#i feel like i might be able to cut him off by the end of the year. and thats crazy to me. i just also have a lot of like shit to unpack
Explore tagged Tumblr posts
Text
hopeless romantic! suna, who canât stop zoning out, while youâre telling him all about the fight the twins got in during second period. he stares at you blankly, thinking about the way your nose crinkles from laughter as youâre talking to him. cute.
hopeless romantic! suna, who asks, âsorry, what were you saying?â in response to you waving your hand in his face and snapping him out of his daze. with a slight blush on his face, he turns his head, mortified that you caught him failing to pay attention.
âseriouslyâŠkeep up!â you reprimand him with a half-serious frown and a pout, and he forces himself to pay full attention not wanting to subject himself to such embarrassment again.
hopeless romantic! suna, who stays up late that night facetiming osamu, as he rambles on about some argument he and atsumu got into earlier in the day.
âsunarin, pay attention! quit thinking about [name], iâm talking to you,â
âi wasnât thinking about her,â he defends, knowing full well that he was wondering if you were still awake before osamu interrupted.
âright, and iâm not the better twin. you know, you should just confess to her before itâs too late. someone else might make a move before you do, then youâll never get to be with her.â
osamuâs statement made suna think hard.
ââŠyeah well she doesnât like me like that. weâre just friends âsamu.â
âyou two are insufferable. let me know when you grow a pair and finally ask her out,â osamu groans out, growing tired of sunaâs crippling fear of rejection.
âwhatever⊠im tired now, bye,â suna cut off osamuâs rant with a yawn, before he ended the call.
would she really go out with someone else?
today was the day. suna decided that today would be the day he put his fear to the side and told [name] how he felt. he felt his hands tremble every time she was near and his heart pound, as adrenaline surged through his body.
during your lunch break, you sat on the roof together, just the two of you alone. suna saw this moment as his opportunity, the perfect chance to try and confess his feelings to you. you were currently rambling to him again, telling a story he honestly tried to listen to, but it proved difficult considering his heart was beating out of his chest, as he thought of how youâd respond to what he was about to tell you.
âand then aran and kita told me-â
â[name], i-â he interrupts you mid-sentence, but his voice got caught in his throat. he cursed himself for being so nervous, all he had to do was say the three words but nothing came out.
âyeah, whatâs up?â you ask him, as you drink from your strawberry milk carton contentedly.
âiâŠumm⊠i have something to tell you,â
okay yes, good start. just tell her.
âokayâŠshould i be worried?â you ask, starting to get concerned about how serious suna suddenly became.
you thought heâd been acting strange the past week, like how heâs been zoning out recently when speaking to you, or just staring strangely. youâre getting the vibe that somethings wrong with him. maybe heâs sick? maybe he doesnât want to be your friend anymore? you have no clue what to think, so you chose to hear him out.
ânoâŠwell, maybe.â
he felt his hands getting clammy and nervously rubbed them on his trousers. his eyes darted everywhere, looking at everything in the room except back at your own expecting pair. he realised heâd been silent for too long - he needed to say something now.
âi have to tell you how much you mean to me. you might not realise it, but iâm obsessed with you. i think of you before i sleep, and youâre the first thing i think of when i wake up. you consume me, and i donât know what i would do without you,â he blurted out, speaking so quickly you wouldnât have been able to keep up if you werenât listening so intently.
you sat there, stunned in silence. of all things he couldâve said to you, you certainly didnât expect this. he took your silence as a signal to continue his speech.
âi need you in ways that surely canât be healthy,â he chuckled, releasing a nervous breath.
âi-â
âyou donât have to accept it. i donât expect you to tell me you feel the same, but iâd wait forever for you. if you want to be just friends then we will. but you have to tell me what to do. i like you so much. you can say you hate me. you can say you donât feel the same. just tell me the truth.â
he couldnât muster up the courage to look you in the eyes, so he kept his gaze trained to the ground, staring hard at the laces of his shoes.
âsuna..â you started, forcibly sucking in a breath of air since you felt like all of it had been knocked out of your lungs.
âthatâs the most beautiful thing anyoneâs ever said to me. thank you. i donât now what iâd do without you either because i like you too,â you confessed as he rushed to hold you in his arms in a warm hug.
âthank God, i donât know what iâd do if you rejected me,â he joked, covering up his anxiety with humour.
âi could never reject you,â you beamed at him in return. he felt his heart explode.
hopeless romantic! suna, who returned to last period that day with a smile from ear to ear, as he entered the classroom hand in hand with you by his side.
#suna rintarou#suna x reader#suna x you#suna x y/n#suna rintaro x reader#suna rintarĆ#suna rintaro haikyuu#suna rintaro fluff#suna rintaro x you#suna rintaro x y/n#fluff
62 notes
·
View notes
Text
The first work I'm posting on here! Criticism, feedback, and tips are always welcome! Please, be kind. I would love to know what you think! Apologies for spelling errors. I suck.
Slightly suggestive content but nothing explicit.
~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~
When you got injured Zayne had a tendency to go abstinent. Whether you got the injury from a workplace accident or from an everyday mishap the result was always the same.
Zayne always fussed no matter the severity of your wounds. He treated papercuts, light red bruises, to simple rug rashes. But when it was truly serious? Zayne would get sucked into that gorgeous, brilliant mind of his. He lost himself, dedicating every bit of his energy to tending to you.
His concern warmed you inside just as much as it pained you.
A couple of weeks ago you had gotten caught off guard by a Wanderer. In the split second your mind had registered the presence of a threat, the beast had already whipped you onto the ground. You were a good fighter when you were clutching onto a gun, a sword, hellâ sometimes you even wielded a staff. But your body was no match against the jaws of a Wanderer.
You got tossed around like a limp ragdoll, one of your legs punctured by its teeth. What felt like lifetimes of pain, that was likely only a few seconds, ended when the Wanderer grew bored of you. Tossing your weightless figure against the bark of a nearby tree.
You don't remember blacking out on impact. You don't remember your partner carrying you out of the woods. What you do remember was waking up tucked into clean white bedsheets. Zayne staring down at you, a furrow in his brow that spoke of his worry.
Since then, you've returned home. On constant bed rest under the strict orders of the primary care physician. The first few days were tolerable. Until they weren't.
"Zayne," you grumbled from your spot on the bed, "I'm a bit banged up. But giving me a kiss isn't going to break me."
All of your attempts to seal your lips against Zayne's since you had returned home have been gently rejected. Delicately pushing down on your injured shoulder, placing your head back on the plush pillows.
"You have a cut on your lip," the infuriating man had reasoned. A tiny, insignificant scratch on the middle of your lip. One that had already begun to heal.
"If you are not careful, it will become infected. The last thing you need right now is more pain."
This continued on for weeks. Every kiss was rejected. Every request for some soothing cuddles was denied. The most physical contact you have gotten from your beloved was the brush of his chilled fingers against your heated skin when he changed your bandages.
You would be worried that Zayne might be upset at you for getting injured and denying you intimacy because of it. If not for the fact that you've seen your longing reflected in Zayne's eyes. He yearned to be closer just as much as you do. Finally, you have had enough.
"Zayne!" Late in the evening, the orange glow of setting sunlight streaming through the curtains, you call out to him from the bed. The door to the bedroom was left wide open, another rule of Zayne's. He wanted to be absolutely certain he would be able to hear you if you needed help. A mug of hot chocolate you didn't brew cools on the bedside table.
"I need help!" There was no verbal response. All you heard was the hasty scrape of chair legs against the floor. Worried footsteps pad down the carpeted hallway. It does not take long for Zayne to arrive.
"What?" With practiced efficiency, Zayne swiftly floats to where you rest. Bending at the knees to bring his face level with yours. He peers into your eyes for the answers your mouth may not give him.
"What do you need, my love? Tell me."
Good. You had him right where you wanted him. And this time, you were not going to let Zayne deny you over his needless concern. Taking his larger hand, you guide the tip of his fingers to brush against your lonesome lips.
"I feel pain. Right here." Guiding his hand further, you rest his palm over his heart. The heart Zayne has dedicated his life to studying, to mending, to soothing.
"And here." You keep moving him. Until his hand rests between the dip of your legs.
"And especially here."
You would pay to keep this particular expression on Zayne's face for the rest of your life. The slack of his jaw, the shocked furrow of his brow, the flabbergasted parting of his pink lips. When you come to learn Zayne's expression, he was like a whole new man.
"Darling," Zayne sighs shakily. His widened eyes squeeze tightly shut. Searching for the composure you always make him lose. Carefully, Zayne glides his hand upwards to the more appropriate parts of your body.
"We can't."
"Yes," you are quick to rebuttal, "we can. I'm going back to work after this weekend, Zayne." You were likely to be kept on paperwork duties until your colleagues were certain you were well enough to be on the field. But even so, it was proof enough that you were no longer in a terrible condition. And there was no longer any excuse for Zayne to keep himself from you.
"Please," you take on a breathier, pleading tone. You don't want to get snippy with him. But gosh, you were so tired of this distance.
"I would set the world on fire for a single kiss." Lacing your fingers together you squeeze his hand to emphasize your words.
"Being unable to have you, especially when you're right in front of me, hurts more than any of my injuries."
The same agonized expression that decorated Zayne's features when you first woke up in Akso returns to his face. All you ever seemed to do was worry him. No one would be surprised if he suffered the same heart problems as his patients in a couple years.
"The last thing I ever want to do is hurt you." Removing his glasses, setting them down next to your now cold, unappetizing hot chocolate, he leans down. Pressing the curve of his forehead against yours. Eyes fluttering, your head melts against him, your neck going practically limp. This was the first non-clinical contact you've gotten from your beloved in days.
"Then be near me," you beg.
"I love Doctor Zayne with all of my heart. But he's not who I need right now. You are my best medicine." You should have been this honest from the beginning. It would have avoided you all this unnecessary loneliness these past few weeks. Zayne always indulged you eventually, especially when you were at your most vulnerable.
Keeping his eyes shut Zayne takes one, two, three long inhales through his nose. The unintentional consequence of breathing in your sweet scent hits him like a tidal wave. His exhales come out trembling, strained.
"Alright," he concedes to your whims. Bowing his head, he nods. Finally, he was giving in to you. All his treatment from these past few weeks was nothing compared to his. You swore you were cured.
"Alright. But I must go slow. For your sake and my own. I meant it when I said I refuse to ever be the cause of your pain."
There would be no complaints from you. Despite the intense longing to be closer to Zayne, to breathe the air straight from his lungs, to be connected body and soul, you wanted it to be done tenderly. There was no less passion in slow, thoughtful love.
"Zayne," you whisper, clasping the back of his neck. Finally, he crawls into bed next to you. The bed that has felt so empty and cold, almost unbearable every night. You would be sure that the imprint of his body would be left on the mattress come morning.
"You've got yourself a deal."
#lads zayne#love and deepspace#zayne love and deepspace#lnds zayne#lnds#fanfic#short#slight angst#slightly suggestive#no smut#first post#fluff#happy ending
23 notes
·
View notes
Text
"reading under the red hood and it's pretty good i think" - jason todd fan who has only seen the cartoon adaptation of under the red hood
#getting my hands on the comic for utrh is cracking my entire brain open about werewolf fic like you don't understand#the cartoon movie was pretty tight but the comic is more robust. and yall the themes for werewolf fic...they're all coming together#now if only i could write the girls fighting FR I'M TOO SOFT YOU GUYS OTL#i'm just feeling insane over the first confrontation with bruce and how Jason tells him that 'gotham is evil'#and 'you have to fight her where she lives' and 'i live there' LIKE#it's only fueling my crazed impression that the end to Jason's philosophy has only two ends#when he's done what he's set out to do and rid the world of evil by cutting it out (which is futile; blind and toothless etc but details)#either: he changes his philosophy and becomes the very type of villain he hates or he dies himself. because he also deserves death#'i live there' ARE YOU KIDDING ME???#sorry if this is Not News to people or if Jason has had some serious growth vis a vis this entire mindset but like.#I'M INSANE ABOUT IT. I'M CHEWING ON IT FOREVER#and bruce is the wrong person to try to sway Jason off this path. theres way too much baggage too much history too many complicated feeling#but...tim...? >.>#tim i think has enough 'this is not my philosophy this is company policy and i'm the worlds okayest employee' energy to eventually do it#like obviously stuff would need to Happen for it to be possible lol but you guys. this is what made jaytim so tasty to me in the first plac#tim being capable of meeting jason halfway like bruce can't; tim being able to hold the conversation with jason without it collapsing#tim having rebuttals to jason's arguments that might actually get somewhere with him eventually...#i'm not saying it would be fast or easy or even make sense in canon lmao but think there's a lot of fic potential there owo#like tim's vicious streak is something jason would appreciate. :3c#local jaytim fic author rambles about jaytim in the tags once again more at eleven lol anyway#jason todd#dc
8 notes
·
View notes
Text
also
#im making huge huge changes in my life and i think the next logical step would be to cut off jamie. ive already been ghosting him but thats#just me avoiding the problem. i just like. it feels fucked to be like hey i told you i was ok with what you did but i Changed my mind#i just think like. i have next to no contact with him and i feel fucking fantastic. we talk like every couple months on the rare occurrence#he can text and then i answer in vague short sentences and ghost. and now that i finally have firm boundaries with him and havent engaged#with him sexually its like. i feel like basically all my ties are cut. and i feel like im ready to let go for the first time. like ive#always felt like i just wasnt ready but now i like i Am ready its just a matter of like. doing it. thats difficult. even though i know hell#accept it because hes matured. and like. idk. i think its fine like this#and idk i think its fine like this. being the absolute barest form of acquaintances. i cannot stress how little we interact and how little#affect he has on my life at this point outside of what happened in the past. like i am in a good place he is 99% cut off i just need to do#the last bit. but like also fuck. you know. its hard to kinda finish it off. and its also like ooh it would hurt his feelings but now i#fucking. dont care lol. after everything. with blue i realize every day just how much more respected i feel and less gross and shitty#even with being jamies friend which we never were because whenever i was single we were sexual. i just felt bad. i never wanted to fuck#either. and he would say he loved me and id be like hahaha yeahhhh and now that ive finally drawn that boundary and said he cant do that#anymore i feel so much lighter and i just feel so happy and safe with blue in a way ive never felt with jamie and its like. im almost there#i feel like i might be able to cut him off by the end of the year. and thats crazy to me. i just also have a lot of like shit to unpack#in general too also. with what he did. and i just have a lot. but i feel like im progressing
2 notes
·
View notes
Text
HYPER-SEXUAL (s,jy)
If thereâs anything in life that Jake wants, itâs to fuck. All day, every day, itâs on his mind. He fantasizes constantly, watches porn every free chance he gets, and ultimately has grown bored of his own hand to satiate his need. or the one where jake is inexperienced, incredibly perverted, and borderline addicted to sex but cannot, for the life of him, land a girl.
leave feedback and reblog to give jake another boner.Â
minors do not interact.Â
WORDCOUNTâ 13.8k
PAIRINGâ jake sim x afab reader
CONTENTâ smut, inexperienced but pervy and dominant jake, he kind of has an addiction to jerking off, im not joking like he has a boner every twenty minutes itâs probably a medical issue but, reader is really sex positive and lets jake go absolutely insane on her
NOTEâ not proof read in the way it needed to be. disclaimer: this is straight up just porn. it had a plot at one point but i deleted all of it and wrote this instead. also this is posted on my other blog [@ncteez] for mark lee. yes, i wrote it for both of them bc they both fit the shoe ok? ok.
smut tags under cut::Â
smut tagsâ jake isnât submissiveâ just a loser, loads of masturbation, also loads of loads lmfao, jakeâs dick is 8 inches in this one, public humiliation, dirty talk, teasing, pussy eating / face sitting, mentions of free use, unprotected sex, wayyyy way too much cum, raw grinding, attempts at deep throat, accidental face fucking, finger fucking, suffocation, riding, squirting, implications to the fact that orgasms are not the end of the fic bc they just keep going, some say theyâre still fucking to this day.Â
ă»ă»ă»ă»ă»ă»ă»ă»ă»ă»ă»ă»ă»ă»
âFeels so good! Harder! Fuck m-âÂ
Jake slams his laptop shut in an exasperated sigh. Frustrated, annoyed, fucking horny.Â
Always horny. To the point that nothing excites him anymore. Not his hard-on being palmed at by his own hand, not the make-shift pocket pussy heâs made out of household objects, not the porn on page one or on page seventy-three.Â
Honestly, even as hard as he is now, itâs arguable that he could just start punching his cock and heâd still remain in this state until something changes. And you know what sucks more than not being able to get off? Being hard so constantly that itâs just a state of living at this point.Â
Itâs sad. He could be washing caked ketchup off of a plate and his cock would still lend a little jump. A reminder that his hand is no longer enough. A fucking threat that if he doesnât sink into a pretty hole soon, he might as well just kill himself.Â
The idea doesnât seem too bad anymore, as he lays flat on his back with his cock in hand on his messy sheets. He stares up at the ceiling with another long-winded groan, wondering why he has to have such an insatiable libido and probably twice as much stamina. If he could just get off heâd have at least a little bit of time in his day to feel normal before it takes hold of his brain again.Â
Itâs the fact that heâs grown entirely numb to his own hand and feels like heâs going crazy because he hasnât been able to hook-up with anyone in nearly a year. Porn is boring, he swears heâs seen just about all of the good, bad, and bizarre. Post nut clarity barely exists because there is no clarity by the time he finally gets that hard-to-reach nut. Bad luck, maybe. Awful fucking miserable luck? Thatâs more fitting.Â
For the sake of the girls in this city, perhaps itâs good that he canât manage to land a hook-up. Surely theyâd be unable to walk by the time he gets his fill, that is if he manages to get a fill at all. And itâs gotten to the point that Jake has almost entirely given up on finding a girl at all. One thatâs willing to put up with his near-constant need to get his dick wet, anyway.Â
Almost given up.
A thought crosses his mind as he lazily palms himself with a bored sigh, knowing heâll end up locked up in an asylum somewhere if this doesnât stop. The voice of Jay in his head doing little to make his cock soften, which isâŠnot something Jake is proud to admit.
âDude, you gotta put a stop to this shit. This is your third laptop this year!â Jay had said to him. âItâs only June!â
Maybe Jay was right, and maybe Jake should have downloaded the new app that was mentioned shortly after the scolding rather than immediately going to another, even more, shady porn site. âHeard this one was really good.â Jay had advertised. âEven got Jungwon laid.âÂ
Well, maybe it wouldn't hurt to try another app despite the immense amount of failure Jake has already faced regarding previous attempts with other platforms. After all, if it got Jungwon laid, surely it could get him laid too.Â
Maybe this one really is better.
And at the end of the day, Jake does download the app. After all, creating a profile is easy, finding a girl though?Â
Weâll see.
ă»ă»ă»ă»ă»ă»ă»ă»ă»ă»ă»ă»ă»ă»
Ah. Okay. Nice.
Jake stays glued to his phone all night. He really had no hope that this app would offer him anything more than what the others did. But, oh.Â
The app allows specific features, most of which are not aimed towards users looking for a relationship. Dick and body sizes are out in the open, thereâs sections you can fill out regarding what youâre looking for in a sexual partner, how often youâre willing to see said partner, and if youâre looking for a regular fuck or a one time fuck.Â
Safe to say, Jakeâs profile went a little something like this:Â
you can call me jake, im 24. just looking for a girl either for regular visits or a one night stand thatâs willing to deal with a guy who literally suffers from chronic-boner syndrome.
LOOKING FOR: Female PREFERENCE: One Time Only, Occasional Meetups, On-call, Regular meetups, Permanent Friends-With-Benefits, Secret Meet, Virtual Meet, Audio Meet, Rebound CâŠ[Click to see more] PARTNER REQUIREMENTS: N/A SIZE REFERENCE: 8 Âœâ hard, 4â soft, 5.6â circumference SEXUAL INTERESTS: Vanilla, Free Use, BDSM, Begging, Breeding, Dom/Sub, Dominatrix, CBT, Role Play, Public Humiliation, Edging, Spanking, Dirty Talk, Phone Sex, Virtual Sex, Group Sex, Humiliation, Cock Play, Cum Dump, Religion, Raw, Multiple Orgasms, Androgyny, Genital Piercings, Older Women, Body Art, Wax, Anal, Financial Domina...[Click to see more]
NOT INTERESTED IN: Cuckolding, Voyeurism OTHER: im not very experienced in most of these, i just watch a lot of porn
Embarrassing? Yeah, probably.Â
Looks like a lot of women are into that though if his inbox is anything to go by, anyway. With him checking the app every few minutes to find ten new messages? Yeah, theyâre feeling him.Â
He can only imagine what the fuck Jungwon had on his profile to actually land a hook-up. Couldnât have been any worse than his own, after all, Jake is desperate and so was Jungwon at one point.Â
Apparently girls like desperate guys.Â
Message after message, degrading comments and praise, all from either women clad in leather or sweet looking church girls who must have the app hidden deep within their phones. Thereâs barely anyone in between those two categories, actually.Â
âHi baby boy, you looking for a sugar mama?âÂ
âur dick really that big? lol, what do you even mean by âchronic boner syndromeâ?âÂ
âyouâre so desperate to get laid, might as well just doxx yourself at this pointâŠplease.â
Arguably, these women are very forward and he has a great time sifting through the ones heâs interested in. Scrolling through all of these messagesâŠ.does not help his case regarding his insatiable need to fuck something either so, naturally, heâs also 100% jerking off the entire time heâs doing this.
Still, never quite able to reach the orgasm he needs by this point.
Up until thereâs a message that catches his attention. No degrading, no insults, no borderline-too-kinky insinuations. Which, given, Jake probably shouldnât have selected the majority of the kinks just to pull more girls, but he did.Â
And upon reading the message, he almost doesnât know if this girl is real.Â
âHigh libido, no girls around to help you out, I take it? Rough.â
One look at her profile spikes even more interest. Her sexual interests include a list of things he wishes he didnât fit. But he does, though heâd never admit it. Inexperienced men, losers, virgins, micro-penis, big penis, praise (receiving), body worshipâ
Oh.
Fuck yeah.
He responds quickly, already feeling the orgasm within him bubble up as he tries to pretend he doesnât go on a war path of responding to everyone after you, but still. Your message box with him remains in his mind as he awaits the response to his message of âyou looking to help me out?âÂ
Every ping on his phone afterwards makes his cock twitch more, makes it dribble out little beads of pre-cum with each pass of his palm, only for him to sigh out of frustration that itâs just another person that wants to devour him whole. Which, heâll take what he can get if his first choice never responds but still. He wants to get off to you.
He finds himself on your profile more often than anyone elseâs too, looking at the same three photos youâve posted, noting how you donât seem super active on the app, but active enough to find him by some beautiful grace of God.Â
Youâre kind of perfect, honestly. Fairly mundane compared to most of the women in his inbox, but cool nonetheless. He can tell you have an eye for fashion but it seems to be more geared towards your real life self rather than the secret fetish/kink app youâve got downloaded.
And thatâs the thing. Most of these women, beautiful or not, are dressed in their best sexual attire just to message a possible fuck, while during their daily lives they probably wear conservative dresses and pant suits. WhichâŠ.arguably thatâs kind of hot. Then again, what isnât hot to him these days?
You though. You have normal pictures posted just like he does. Your tits arenât out, your legs arenât open, you donât have a pile of sex toys behind or beside you and yet still your pictures turn him on more than those who do. Insane how his cock twitches at just these three photos, fucking insane how he grows a near instant obsessed thinking about how youâŠuh, deal with the losers you seem to be looking for. Â
Then again, maybe itâs the mystery of whatâs under your clothes, or whatâs in your stash of sex toys. Oh, whatever youâre hiding has got be so fucking hot. Naturally, he groans at the amount of sexuality you barely give. Thinking far, far too hard about it all, given the circumstances.Â
Donât get him wrong, he can get down with the hoes. In fact, he very much wants to get down with a hoe. But man, the way you stand out because youâre somehowâŠ.boring compared to everyone else?
Please.
Fucking pretty please, let him in between those thighs.Â
And just as he scrolls again through your photos, that long-awaited orgasm hits him like a brick.
ă»ă»ă»ă»ă»ă»ă»ă»ă»ă»ă»ă»ă»ă»
A mere two days later you find yourself in the inbox with the self-proclaimed boner-god. Heâs since proven his size with photos involving different objects beside said penis, and even a video or two of his frantic hands jerking off to you.Â
Ah, heâs kind of perfect if you think about it. At first you thought that it was just roleplay for him or something. Where he plays a guy who canât get enough, though he clearly probably does. It wasnât until you were woken up at four in the morning with him spamming your inbox that you suddenly realized this dude is actually as desperate as he seems.Â
Normally, being spammed awake by your phone pinging consistently would bother you. But goddamn was he needing it. Just three hours before now it was mostly casual conversation with him, albeit about hooking-up, but still. The two of you agreed to determine on the following day if you were compatible enough for a meet up. He said goodnight to you, and you said it back.Â
Then you woke up to three dick pics, one voice note with a borderline pathetic apology (only because you could still hear him going at it), and then like fourteen messages of him trying to wake you up intentionally.Â
JAKE_02 sent you a message: You awake?
Dick pic #1.Â
JAKE_02 sent you a message: Youâre so pretty, sorry lol
Dick pic #2Â
JAKE_02 sent you a message:Â Wake uppppppppppp!Â
JAKE_02 sent you a message:Â Please? :(
Dick pic #3, precum smeared across his fingers as he grips it.Â
JAKE_02 sent you a message:Â Do you already have me silenced?
JAKE_02 sent you a message: Iâd let you silence me hahahaâŠ.
JAKE_02 sent you a voice memo: âSorry about all this, I really meant it when I said I have a problem. You should probably just block me because Iâm going to end up begging to see you otherwiseâ
Oh, he has an accent.Â
JAKE_02 sent you a message: your profile says you like inexperienceâŠ..well iâve only slept with like 3 girls, is that inexperienced enough?
JAKE_02 sent you a message: do you like to tease guys like that? like edge them and stuff?Â
JAKE_02 sent you a message: oh damn, thatâd be so hotÂ
JAKE_02 sent you a message: do you like it when guys beg btw?Â
Etcetera.Â
And, well, apparently he just has a lot to say. Itâs cute how embarrassed he must feel basically getting himself off with a one-sided sext session with you as you were sleeping. At least, you hope heâs embarrassed.Â
You let his messages simmer for a while, waiting to see if he sends anything else. And when he doesnât, you respond.Â
YOURUSERNAME: that was cute.Â
Itâs the way heâs instantly trying to respond that really gets you going. You chuckle first, knowing already that youâd probably help him out based on this situation alone.Â
YOURUSERNAME: trying to wake me up because you canât stop touching yourself? :( poor baby.Â
JAKE_02: oh god please donât say that
JAKE_02: im gonna end up awake all night trying to get it to go down again
YOURUSERNAME: thatâs good to hear. so you can go for a long time then?Â
Yes, youâre teasing him.Â
JAKE_02: if youâd let me
YOURUSERNAME: you already got off tonight tho, didnât you?
JAKE_02: i donât think you understand just how bad it is. iâm already getting my dick out again
You lend yourself a sly chuckle after a deep yawn, knowing for a fact that youâre about to make him prove to you that heâs either still hard or really did get off only to get hard again by a mere few messages from you.Â
YOURUSERNAME: show me?
And he does. Similar to the other three photos, only this time he sends a short video with his shorts pushed down his thighs and his cock raging hard and pathetic against his stomach. Again, heâs big, that much is true, but the fact that such a dick is always ready to fuck? To the point heâs desperate? To the point heâs embarrassing about it?
YOURUSERNAME: how bad do you wanna bury that in me?
Oh, shit. Jake could fucking die right now. You seem so willing, which is truly what he needs at this point in his sexual sickness. Â
JAKE_02: iâll come over right now.Â
JAKE_02: let me come over and show you
YOURUSERNAME: letâs wait a bit for that, gotta meet officially before I let you fuck me
And you do intend to make him wait, knowing for a fact that youâre not meeting this guy tonight. Thereâs too much danger in that. Given how desperate he actually is, you can argue that if you changed your mind upon meeting, he very well may not care. Which, thatâs something you need to worry about with any person you meet on such an app, but still.
Public meeting first.Â
Always.
JAKE_02: right, right, that makes sense.Â
JAKE_02: so can i see your pussy then
You stifle a laugh as if the man can hear you, heâd probably like that though. But yeah, no. As much as you know heâd enjoy that, itâs best to let him experience it for the first time in real life if all of this goes well. So, you settle with tits.Â
Meaning, he has to settle with them too.Â
And the photo is all but enough for Jake. The ping of his phone was far too exciting with the flash of the image sinking into his eyes. Sure, he wanted to see your hole open for him, he wanted to see your pretty hands spreading your lips for the picture, he wanted to see what he might get to fuck into somedayâ butâŠ
This is good enough for him, honestly. Seeing your tits alone is hot enough, but itâs the fact that you only barely let him see. The plush skin of your lower breasts are peeking from under the shirt you're wearing, one nipple barely out, the other completely hidden.Â
He moans out at it, holding his cock tight and painfully as he glares into the screen of his phone. God, he can almost taste it.Â
JAKE_02: thats so hotâŠbutâŠ.
JAKE_02: pussyâŠ.
JAKE_02: please show me your pussy
Another chuckle at how desperate he really is. You lower your phone just a bit, not at all intending to show him all of it but you do lend a panty shot with your legs spread. Heâll live with it, he doesnât have a choice.Â
And he does live with it because he cums almost instantly upon seeing just your thighs open. He wouldnât have been able to hit climax so quickly had you already had this photo posted for all to see. Itâs the fact that you sent it to him in the dms. Itâs the fact that you presumably just took it for him. Itâs the fact that he can almost see the outline of your folds, and the lines of your pussy that deserves to fucked open.Â
When he doesnât respond immediately, you know it was enough for him. Already youâre preparing to roll back over and get some more sleep, but your phone dings again.Â
JAKE_02: tht was hot lolâŠ.um
JAKE_02: can u come to the mall tomorrow? i work at [redacted store name], u can come see that im actually very normal if u want
You stop for a second through another yawn, thinking long and hard about it. You shrug to yourself because tomorrow is a saturday and thereâs plenty of public spaces to meet him in. And despite how fun it could be to tease him for weeks on end before officially meeting him, you, yourself, have been in a dry-spell lately.Â
And he fits your interests perfectly. In other words, yeah, you could fuck.
YOURUSERNAME: you sure youâre not gonna take me in the back and fuck me on the spot?Â
JAKE_02: âŠ.would u want me to?Â
YOURUSERNAME: no, i wanna bring you home if i think you could make me feel good
JAKE_02: hahah damn
JAKE_02: so youâll come see me?
YOURUSERNAME: yeah, iâll come see you
JAKE_02: ok cool :)
And then itâs silent for a long while. In fact, youâre nearly asleep again when your phone pings one last time. All you need to see is the notification to know that meeting Jake is gonna be fun.Â
JAKE_02 sent you a message: for the recordâŠi definitely will fuck you good
Sounds promising.Â
ă»ă»ă»ă»ă»ă»ă»ă»ă»ă»ă»ă»ă»ă»
You knew he was cute but holy shit, heâs like, cute cute.
Fucking handsome and charmingly cute.Â
Perhaps even, hot.Â
You stand from around a shelf to check him out. That same accent youâve heard previously rings loud and clear in your head, and his hair is definitely a stylistic mess, the type of hair you can imagine grabbing and tugging to guide a tongue between your legs. His eyes are pretty and piercing yet equally as filled with some sort of wonder. His hands, his body.
 Oh wow.Â
On any other day, youâd think heâs just some poser emo-guy working a shitty retail job so he can buy his first guitar and play it totally out of tune. But on this day, youâre aware that this is a man with a need that you very much wouldnât mind satisfying.Â
 Seeing him go about his work tasks behind the counter is another thing. Checking customers out both through the register and with his eyes when they walk away. You know he isnât aware that youâve actually shown up, and it feels nice to watch him in his element before he attempts to play himself up as a totally normal, cool dude. Especially now that you can see him secretly be a pervert on the clock.Â
Customer after customer, he smiles at them when he hands them their items, he offers small talk and little chuckles that ring in your ears, and every single time one of the pretty ones walks away, his head turns to watch them leave for a few seconds too long.
Anyone can tell he needs it if they watch him for long enough.Â
Youâre not sure why this guy is getting to you the way he is, but thereâs just something about the way that he carries himself in public that turns you on. You already know for a fact that heâs a horny motherfucker. You know that behind those charming smiles and laughs, heâs got a neglected cock needing to be used.Â
No one else in this store is aware of it. Youâre the only person here who knows he was spamming a stranger last night with dick pics and begging to see her pussy.Â
Itâs hot.Â
And when you approach, Jake nearly doesnât even know itâs you at first.Â
âHi, did you find everything youââ Jake stops mid sentence. âOh, fuck. Youâre here.â He adds, trying to primp his hair into a spot that may look a little better than it did already.
You watch as he studies you for the first time, nervously darting his tongue out and against his bottom lip just for a split second before shifting his eyes behind you, and then turning to look around to see if anyone is within ear shot.Â
No one is paying attention to either of you, and no one is going to hear what youâre about to say to him. Good.
âDo you wanna see my pussy?âÂ
Itâs a joke, mostly. Kinda.Â
You chuckle at his stunned reaction. His hands move to the counter as he clutches it and continuously looks around to make sure no one just heard those lewd ass words from a girl so goddamn hot. Like, oh god, itâs you. You really showed up to see him and already heâs not acting normal.Â
No, no. Youâre the one acting out of pocket, not him.
âIâmââ He tries to start, but his voice cracks in a very, very, embarrassing way. You hear him clear his throat before continuing. âIâm supposed to be showing you that Iâm normal.âÂ
You tilt your head at him playfully, leaning against the counter and pushing your tits together with your arms. You wore this shirt here for a reason, and boy are you glad you did. You watch his eyes go straight to your chest and stay there.Â
âPublic Humiliation.â You echo one of his sexual interests to him from his app profile. âDirty talk.â
Jake swallows around his words in stunned silence, feeling his cock wake up immediately. Fuck, this is the only place he finds peace of mind fromâŠthat. Yet here you are, with that soft and pretty voice reminding him of everything he wants but hasnât been able to have. Standing there like you know he canât bend you over right now and make you stop talking.
âEight and a half inches hard.â You continue, leaning in even closer and moving your hand to the collar of your shirt. Tugging down just a little bit. âFive point six inch circumference.âÂ
Jake squeezes his eyes shut as he leans back with a sigh, pressing his hips against the counter for some sort of relief. To think the âboringâ girl on the app wouldnât be like this? God, he knew there had to be a catch considering you were on that app to find him in the first place.Â
âPleaseââ He groans as his ears redden, lazily opening his eyes to look at your tits again. âPlease donât do this to me.âÂ
âI can imagine youâd fit it in me just right, wouldnât you Jake?â You continue briefly, noting the bulge he blatantly presses against the counter. âCan you say âpleaseâ again? Itâs kinda hot.âÂ
âPleaseââ Jake blatantly groans now, his voice sounding hoarse and low. As much as he wants you to keep going, heâs at fucking work. He canât be doing this.Â
âOkay!â You gleefully agree as you switch up like you didnât just fuck him up, lending him a bright and innocent smile as you lean back and away from him. âSo you donât want to see my pussy then?â
His relieved face falls right back into that of pained frustration as he narrows his eyes at you.Â
âRight now?â He asks curiously, nodding his head without realizing it. Sure, heâs at work but likeâŠ.your pussy is also at his work place right now.
âYeah! Can you show me to the fitting room, actually?â You ask, louder this time in case anyone has moved around within ear-shot by now. Canât make him lose his job, or whatever.
Jake swallows thickly with a nod, his eyes still narrowed at you but his mind racing a mile a minute at the fact that youâre really here right now, and this is what youâre doing to him? Enjoying his pain? Enjoying his suffering? Making it worse?Â
Five minutes ago he was perfectly fine. Youâre using his need against him and god, he loves it. Yeah, maybe he will take you to the back and try to fuck you at this point. Even if you said that you wouldnât let himâŠwhat the fuck is this then?Â
Really, he expected you to show up with an awkward hello and irritating small talk. He wanted to show you that heâs not always thinking about sex. Except he is, and it seems you want him to. You want him to think about fucking you.Â
You really just walked into this establishment and asked him if he wants to see your pussy.
Of course he wants to see it. You already fucking know that. He wants to fuck it too, like, right now.Â
And as he walks you to the fitting room, he has to try his damndest to adjust his growing cock. He nods to each customer as he walks by them, hands repeatedly going back to his lap to hide what heâs packing.
âHere it is.â Jake says in an unfocused voice, nearly staring a hole through you. âNow show me.âÂ
You dip your head in a smile, heading for the room and opening the curtain. Cheap ass store, really, most places have actual doors, but whatever.Â
Itâs easy to step inside and leave the curtain skewed a bit, knowing that Jake is hovering around the room, knowing that itâs probably protocol that an employee assist this space when itâs in use to prevent stealing and to prevent others from walking in on naked customers.Â
You like the way you see him take peeks, trying to be discreet. You like the way he keeps his hands in front of his lap, hiding that youâve definitely made him a mess of him already. You love the way he whispers a curse to himself when you sit against the bench in this small room and spread your legs wide open.Â
You bet he loves the skirt youâre wearing for him today too. Though this wasnât exactly planned or anything, you didnât expect to be this turned on upon seeing him act as desperate as he sounds. You wore this shirt so he can look, and the skirt tooâŠbut looking this much wasnât in your mind originally.Â
Heâs hot though. The way he needs it is hot.Â
âHurry up.â He groans, trying to make it seem like heâs frustrated but you know itâs just because heâs anxiously horny.Â
And, well, youâre not actually gonna show him your pussy, but at this point you feel bad because he seems really stiff right now, almost robotic in the way he likely feels uncomfortably aroused in his least favorite place. Â
âJake,â You whisper-chuckle. âIf you wanna see it, youâre gonna have to come in here and take my panties off of me.â
You hear him sigh, and see his eyes flick back to you through the small open space in the curtain.Â
âYouâre insane. I canât come in there, Iâll lose my job.â He argues with a hushed tone, eyes fixated on the very panties he wishes he could remove.Â
Even against his protests though, he reaches an arm in as he looks away. As if on extreme watch of other customers and employees roaming around. Probably pretending to grab a garment that doesnât work for you, probably just doing normal, good-employee things.Â
And, well, itâs pathetic really, the way he hopes for more. The way you offer more knowing he canât get exactly what he wants. You actually feel a bit bad for doing this, especially because it wasnât entirely in the plan.Â
You really were just coming to meet him. Itâs not your fault that watching him work turned you on solely because you know what he needs. So, you stand and walk towards the curtain, grabbing his arm and holding it in place.Â
âWellââ You start, pressing yourself against the backside of his fingers, feeling him move his hand slightly against your clit. âTouch it then.â
He goes entirely silent but you feel the way he fumbles his hand, immediately grabbing your panties and moving them to the side just to really feel. And you let him, finding it somehow cuter in the way he doesnât even ask. He does it like he needs to, like itâs instinctual to touch it. He feels for a second or two, probably closer to about five seconds before you step back. Really, itâs enough for him to know youâre wet, enough for him to suffer, enough for him to want more.Â
Jakeâs brain is on fire at it. Touching it before getting to see it? Goddamn, youâre so fucking mean.
And itâs silent for a few more moments after that as Jake keeps his hand in place, seemingly searching for a pussy just out of reach when you slide the fabric down your legs and place them directly into his hand.Â
âWhen do you get off work?â You ask slyly now, ripping the curtain open and moving his hand for him, forcing him to shove your panties in his pocket.Â
âUhââ He stutters, swallowing again around his words before clearing his throat of the moan he really needs to let out right now. âSevenâ I get off at seven.â
You nod with a smile, leaning in real close before patting his pocket.Â
âIâll text you my address.âÂ
And you leave without sparing him another glance, knowing that by the time his shift is over, heâll probably pounce the second you open your door for him.Â
ă»ă»ă»ă»ă»ă»ă»ă»ă»ă»ă»ă»ă»ă»
Jake suffers through the rest of his shift aggressively trying not to suck on his fingers. Fuck, he wants to taste you so bad, but to go as low as sucking the remnants for several hours just to hold him over? Truly, heâs at his wits end.Â
Mostly because he absolutely does suck his fingers any chance he gets. Tapping his lips with them as he sees a customer off, licking against them discreetly, trying to make it look normal for him to have his fingers in his mouth so consistently.Â
Itâs not doing anything to hold him over though.Â
He keeps glancing at the clock, and then at the message that reads your address. Just one more hour and he can leave. Just one more hour and he can bury his cock so deep into you that youâd never think twice about letting him do it again, and again, and again.
Oh god, really, he feels like heâs going insane as he checks out customer after customer. Every word they say somehow reminds him that heâs about to finally get laid again.Â
âCan you wrap this up for me?â One customer said to him, nodding to a set of candles.Â
Jake wishes youâd wrap him up in that pussy.Â
âDo you have this in a bigger size?â Another customer had said to him as they held up a plush sweater.Â
Jake doesnât think youâd ever need a dick bigger than his. Heâll fill you up just right.Â
â69.99?!â One customer argues. âThe sign said it was 30% off!âÂ
Jake would sixty nine you all night long if you asked. He bets you taste sweet, you probably get really wet too.Â
And by the end of the night, rain pounding on the roof, his last customer unfortunately has to hear a low groan leave his throat at their comments. Heâs very quick to cover it with a cough.Â
âSorry for coming in right before you close, the rain is bad tonight and I forgot my umbrella, thank god you guys sell them! I didnât mean to drip all over the floor like this, I hope you donât have to stay late cleaning up my mess!âÂ
âI didnât mean to drip all over your floor like thisâ Replays in his head, over and over again. God, heâd make you drip. He hopes you drip all over the floor for him. Heâd get on his knees and lick it right up, god.
He needs to leave. Right now.
âSâall good,â Jake shakes his head after the initial moan and cough cover, trying to remain casual. âItâs my job to clean it up, after all.â He smiles, his brain stuck on the feeling of how wet you were when he touched you. Shiiiit. âHave a good night, stay dry!âÂ
And finally, Jake can close out his register and lock the doors. That, he does. Performing his end-of-night tasks at lightning speed with a cock throbbing so bad that he worries he might have to get off in his car before making it to your apartment. He genuinely needs to get off, especially knowing these pretty panties are in his pocket ready to be soaked in his cum.Â
He doesnât though, no. He holds off, thrusting his hips up and against the inseam of his pants with every passing second as he drives. Heâs practically writhing by the time he gets to your place. Honestly, he moans with each movement because heâs sensitive. Itâs so, so fucking sensitive. Everything feels good, he could genuinely cum the second you open your door if heâs not careful.Â
Careful isnât something Jake can be at this moment though, not when he lands a single knock at your door and youâre immediately opening it, looking at him with that same fucking evil smile you gave to him while he was at work.Â
He looks at you and instantly lets out a frustrated moan before stepping in without another word. You feel his hands grab you much harsher than you originally thought he would, but you let him as you laugh out in a nervous chuckle.Â
âHello to you too.â You pat him on the back as his arms wrap around your middle. You hear him kick back against your door, slamming it shut before his lips hit your neck.Â
He isnât talking but goddamn you can hear what he needs to say through the way he presses his lips against you. Heâs rough with it, kissing all across your exposed skin before slipping his hand right between your legs from the back as if he doesnât have to chase anymore.Â
You were going to jerk your hips back to make him chase, but his grip is too tight and heâs nearly lifting you off the floor entirely to get a feel. You were going to force him to look at you and the outfit you changed into for him, but again, heâs not having it, it seems. He moans when he moves his lips up and against yours, hot breath desperate and needy as he finally speaks.
âDid it turn you on to torture me like that?â He nearly growls against your lips. âGot me so fucking hard.âÂ
Youâre genuinely surprised with how heâs acting and talking. Then again, heâs desperate, that much is obvious if that monster bulge rubbing against your leg is anything to go by. Perhaps he may be desperate, but you guess that doesnât always mean someone will end up submissive as a side effect.Â
âIt did.â You smile against his lips, pushing yourself forward to try and plant your feet back on the ground, chasing the ability to gain control over him. âDid you like that?â
Jake nods before shaking his head, allowing you to push forward, loving the way your hands reach for him and run through his hair before tugging. He did like what you did, but it doesnât change the fact that it was fucking torture to stand there at work like he wasnât losing his mind.Â
âIâd like it more if we skip all the bullshit,â He starts, hand still attempting to reach the spot between your legs and lips landing at the corner of your mouth. âCould go all night.â
You nod to him, gripping his shirt and pulling him back to your living room couch and spinning him around, only to shove him back.Â
âIs that a promise?â You ask, looking at the lazy way he spreads his own legs and rests his head against your couch cushions, eyes staring straight at you and cock twitching in his pants. âYou gonna fuck me all night?â
âYeahââ He breathes as if heâs in disbelief, hand reaching between his legs just to grab himself and squeeze as his eyes trail your body. âYou have no idea how bad I need this.â
âShow me then,â You nod your head to his length thatâs hidden under his pants. âLet me watch you first.â
Jake groans, rolling his eyes back both out of frustration and arousal, but he does as you say. His palm feels better with you watching, at least. He doesnât feel so numb to the pleasure with you promising your body to him, at least. He doesnât mind proving his size to you by shoving his pants down to his thighs and presenting said neglected cock to you either.Â
Itâs heavy, dark in color due to the blood thatâs likely rushing throughout every inch of it. He feels sensitive to even the air in your living room as he twitches and aches to hear you talk again, to see you in front of him watching how he pleasures himself, wishing his hand is yours.Â
âYou wanna watch?â He says in a low-rumbled voice, tracing his fingers along the head of his cock and seething out a breath through his now, bitten bottom lip. âWanna know how tight I want you to feel?â He asks now, bold and in the heat of the moment. You watch him when he squeezes the base of his cock tightly, you can almost feel yourself choke at that alone.Â
âHow wet you need to be to take it?â He continues, dragging his hand back and licking his palm before spitting into it.Â
The wetness against his hand is horrifyingly pornographic. So wet when he reaches back down to his length, allowing you to hear it squelch and slip with ease. His breath is hitched while he does it too, which nearly has you seeing him in tunnel vision.
âYeahâŠâ You tune into him entirely, swallowing around the lump in your throat and feeling yourself drip already. âI canât imagine how goodââ You cut yourself short to moan at the way his other hand holds his pants down while he jerks his hand up faster and faster. âOh god, youâreââ
âWanna see how fast I can cum just looking at you?â He continues, hand only moving faster and faster as his grip tightens more, shamelessly grunting proudly over how he could probably cum now if he wanted to. âI told you, I can go all night.â
You pause, because goddamn. You thought he would be embarrassing, pathetic, needy. You thought he would beg, plead, and cry. ButâŠyou feel like youâre the one who needs to do that. God, youâve never seen a man so desperate to fuck yet be so powerful about it. As if heâs in your face whispering, âYouâre gonna let me fuck you, right? Youâre gonna love it too, right? Youâre gonna let me use you to take care of this little problem of mine, right? Itâs what you want, right?â
If he were to say those things to you right now, youâd nod without a doubt. ButâŠhe doesnât. He simply looks at you now, heaving out broken moans that sound too sexy to be considered pathetic. His hips chase each movement of his hand and goddamn does he fuck his fist hard.
Your mind is spinning watching him, knowing that heâs probably going to fuck you twice as hard as he fucks himself. And itâs not surprising to you at least that you can feel your own clit swell and throb for touch too. You easily move your hand between your legs, standing right there in front of him, toying with yourself as if you donât have the power to ask him to do it for you.Â
âAh, fuckââ Jake groans, thrusting his hips up into his hand one last time before strings of his cum make a mess on his shirt. And it seems to go on forever too, spurt after spurt of it pumping out of him alongside his pretty moans and open-mouthed expression. You can feel your body react to him more than it ever has for anyone else, especially in the wayâŠ.
âGodââ You moan yourself now, watching him spread his legs and slouch more against your couch with a relieved sigh from his messy orgasm. ButâŠhis cock doesnât soften. No, it stays stiff and heavy against his stomach, twitching and dribbling more and more of his cum out in little beads.Â
The proof of his issue is right here, he really can and probably will go all night. And you say nothing else to him after that. In fact, he wouldnât be able to answer you if you did say something simply because you find yourself stepping up onto your own couch, resting your knees against the back of it, and gripping his hair.Â
Jake lets out a half-moan-half-hum, as expected, when he feels your hand drag his face under your skirt. You didnât have to do that, but goddamn does he fucking love it. He loves how he can feel your knees buckle and force you to balance on the couch, loves how your cunt is just as needy as he feels, fucking adores the way you drip all over his tongue when he pushes your panties to the side and starts licking you up.Â
Itâs the fact that he didnât even have to ask you to put it in his face. The slight taste against his fingers all night at work is nothing compared to the way you drown him now. He needs to do this for you. Hell, he needs to do this for himself.
âJesus,â You breathe, rolling your hips on his mouth. Heâs truly eating you like his life depends on it. You can hear his muffled hums at the taste, you can feel his shoulder shake as he starts jerking off again, you can feel the way his tongue goes deeper and deeper, licking each clench of your walls, only to pull back and suck the wet from your panties in a deep breath.Â
He coos at it too, as if heâs in love with the moment, as if he truly canât believe heâs finally got a pussy to lick. And he swallows each mouth full of your slick before muttering curses and promises against your swollen little bud.Â
âPlease,â He moans, nipping and licking against you. âBeen so long since Iâve eaten pussy, rub it on me- fuck-â he continues to babble, heat-of-the-moment-talk coming out as far more arousing than cringe if you listen hard through your ringing ears. âCome on,â He continues, now neglecting his own cock and gripping your ass with both hands, shoving you back and forth on his face in painfully slow and harsh grinds. âCome on, harder.â
As if you can function at all right now with how rough he is about trying to pleasure you? Fucking hell, the words ignite something in you as you pull back and away from him. For a split second, you see his blown out pupils and fucked up hair as he licks his lips and presents that shining lower-half of his face to you.Â
You donât look for long though, no. Because youâre too busy pushing him to the side and forcing him to lay back on the couch instead. You resume your position afterwards, straddling the couch on either side of his head with your knees and planting your pulsing cunt right on his eager tongue.Â
âYouâre too hot,â You moan, feeling his hands go straight back to your ass to force more of those harsh grinds against him. âIf you could see yourself right nowââ Your eyes roll back in pleasure as you feel his moaned out chuckle hit you right in the clit. Itâs like he knows he makes you feel good, but does he really?Â
Does he truly understand how fucking good at this he is?
 âGod, if you could feel how good your tongue isââ You continue, now losing yourself in the heat of the moment, feeling his fingers nearly bruise your ass with the death-grip he has on you.Â
He nods his head in what little space he has as he spirals into heaven behind his eyes. The smell of you suffocates him, the taste of you drowns him, the weight of you is nothing short of sexy as hell. This is all he could ever want. A pretty girl using and abusing his face, much like he wants to do to you. But oh, thereâs so, so much he wants to do after so long of having no one but himself.Â
Eat you out, finger fuck you, slide his cock down that pretty little moaning throat of yours, grip that hair and kiss those tits. God, he wants to do everything right now but he canât bear to push this perfect clit off of his lips. He cannot fathom losing the taste of you and the way you clench around the tip of his tongue.Â
Oh fuck.
âAhh- '' Jake moans open-mouthed against your clit as his brain hits a wall, his cock standing stiff from behind you as he spills out against himself again. Untouched completely, he cums without any effort where as previously it took him hours just to get off because heâd grown so fucking bored of everything.Â
Youâve ignited him. His drive is higher than itâs ever been after being neglected for so long. God, he wants to fuck you so full that you canât bear to leave him.Â
âFuckââ He continues, trying to lend licks between his jerking body to keep your arousal peaked. âSee how bad I need it?âÂ
He finally manages to pull back, feeling you lift from his face just for a moment after noting the way his entire body is shaking. Heâs not having it though, as he cranes his neck in chase of your dripping hole once more.
âWhere do you think youâre going?â He adds now, enveloping his lips around your clit again and using both hands to force you right back down on his face.Â
There, you feel the way he almost passionately makes out with your pussy. As if heâs thanking you for a second orgasm within the past ten minutes. As if he truly canât stop wanting to fuck something, someone, anything at all.
Goddamn, what a fucking deal. All hail the hook-up app that brought this insatiable sex beast to your apartment.
âJakeââ You start, grinding down for him and feeling his hands now move to rub up and down your back. âKeep your tongue in me.â You choke out, gripping his hair to hold his face in place as you sit his tongue inside of you, short and jerky thrusts forward to bump your clit against his nose.Â
Heâs gotten off twice now, itâs your turn.Â
And you watch as he drops his arms from you and grips your outer legs through it, letting you use his face until he canât breathe. Both of you are seeing stars through it, your orgasm bubbling up so quickly that you can barely warn him when your hips halt in a stiffened clench and heâs finishing the job for you.Â
Your legs squeeze around his head, your fingers pull his hair, and still he manages to find the space to tilt his chin up just to tongue-fuck you deeper, just to rub his nose harshly against your clit, up until he feels your quivering pussy spill all over his chin, down his throat, stealing any breath or moan he could possibly give right now.Â
Youâre out of breath by the time you finally slide off of his face, your hands immediately shooting to both of his cheeks as your sensitive clit drags down his stomach for the easy position change. You wince when you lick against his lips at the sensitivity, being sure to seat yourself right against his cock.Â
âHahââ Jake lends a breathy laugh against the way you lick his lips, his hands going right back to your ass and landing a sharp slap to it. âCouldnât even get our clothes off first.â
You take a second to pull back and look at him, noting the redness against his cheeks and nose, likely from your panties consistently getting in his way and then you chuckle back at him. Youâre thankful for the short break the two of you seem to be taking at the moment. Still, you lift up from him just to remove your shirt, exposing your tits in an instant solely because you didnât wear a bra for this exact purpose.Â
Heâs still hard, despite two orgasms. You feel him rubbing it against you every few seconds, right up against your saliva and cum-soaked panties which, mind you, are insanely uncomfortable right now. It feels as if theyâre slicing through your thigh with the force of how Jake managed to keep them shoved out of his way.Â
âJust lay back,â You smile at him, allowing him a longer rest for now as you take it upon yourself to remove the barriers. âLet me take care of you now.â
Jake has hearts in his eyes as he watches you. Normally, a girl would already be falling asleep after all that, leaving him with not enough orgasms and no actual fucking. Itâs not his fault he could do foreplay for upwards of three to four hours before going for the finale. Which, arguably, can and will last several hours longer.Â
Still, you appear to not be finished either, with your breathless smile and gentle hands. He bites his bottom lip through a smirk as he watches you, tits on full display to keep him satiated for now as you move around on the couch to get his pants off of him. He helps a bit with a little kick, his cock still so sensitive and pathetically weeping for more. He feels lucky to have found you, almost baffled that he may have met his match.Â
You lend several glances at his cock, not quite realizing the way heâs blinking at you right now. To be fair, itâs only natural to have your attention on that thing right now. You swallow around your nervousness regarding the size but equally want him to fuck you senseless with it. You already feel entirely fucked out, butâŠthat. Oh, that could change your life, probably. You can imagine he wonât be as gentle as you expected before all of this too. Would probably shove it in all in one go and lose his mind at the feeling.Â
Heâs probably going to split you open and make it feel good for you too. Somehow.Â
Anyway, enough of that. Youâve still got to get his shirt off, your uncomfortable skirt and panties too.Â
You make quick work of it, as you stand to your feet and expose yourself entirely to him. Jake just watches, humming and moaning at each new expanse of skin you show to him. He keeps his hands to himself though, likely so used to feeling of them that theyâd bring no pleasure at this moment if he were to jerk off to you doing this. And you justâŠlook right back at him.
âCome on,â You smile at him again, lending your hand out for him to grab. âBedroom will be more comfortable.â
Right. Bedrooms exist.
Jake follows, cock heavy and sensitive against his thigh with each step as he tries to get up close behind you. His eyes stay on your ass as you walk in front of him, and itâs not hard for him to keep his hands on it. In fact, heâs touching you as often as he can, trying to remind himself that heâs with someone right now who actually wants him.Â
You seem to be willing to let him do what he needs tonight, and hopefully it wonât be the only time.Â
You feel him on you, clinging so closely, hands constantly groping, lips always trying to reach the back of your neck and shoulders, to the point itâs actually difficult to get to your bedroom because you want nothing more than to turn around and shove him against the wall, all to try and take him into your mouth just to see if you can.
He doesnât really let you think about that for too long though, because the second you get to your bedroom, heâs grabbing you from behind and lifting you in his strong arms. You writhe in his grasp with playful giggles, feeling the strong hold he has on you, keeping you in place against him as he stumbles forward with a deep inhale into your neck.
Heâs quick to make his way to your bed, dropping you onto it, flipping you over onto your back, and immediately slotting himself between your legs. He hovers over you for a minute, looking directly into your eyes as his hair falls forward.Â
Somehow, youâre more focused on his face than you are of his cock that heâs sliding up and down your core right now. You reach up to his hair, brushing it out of his face and feeling the sticky sweat at his scalp.Â
âCould eat you out again.â Jake mentions, hips thrusting against you but eyes calm and level with yours. âCould lock me up in here and just use me all day if you want.â He continues, partially being serious about it, but treating it as if itâs some kinky joke instead.Â
Because letâs be honest. If thereâs any job Jake could do better than anyone else, itâs be a womanâs fuck toy. Always ready to go, always stiff and horny, always willing to please.Â
âCould slide in right now and let you feel how hard I am.â His voice gets breathier as he talks, and you can tell heâs just imagining everything he wants to do. He probably worries heâll have to go home at some point tonight only to resume his search for potential fucks to keep his need satiated.Â
He probably thinks heâs going to exhaust you.Â
âCould let you do all of that and more.â You respond, lifting your hips just slightly to press his cock between your bodies, throwing your legs around his waist simultaneously with the way you wrap your arms around his neck. âYou want me to lock you up in here?âÂ
Jake nods with a sigh, squeezing his eyes shut as if he can imagine it.Â
âDo you work tomorrow?âÂ
He shakes his head with another sigh, focusing on the way you keep humping up against his length, sliding yourself in whatever way you can against him.Â
âMaybe Iâll just have to do that then.â
Oh, damn.Â
The heart eyes are back. The very thought of being in this room all night and all day tomorrow drives his cock to pulse and twitch. Foreplay can come whenever, fucking can come whenever, he can cum whenever. Thereâs no need for a to-do list. No need for a specific structure of rules on how this needs to happen. Foreplay, sex, sleep. Not with Jake.Â
Sex. foreplay. sex. foreplay. for hours. Heâll keep you up all night if he can, fucking and sucking every part of you, into the morning hours straight into tomorrow night.Â
Free use with you from now until youâre tired of him. You can do anything you want to him but for nowâŠ
âYeah?â Jake breathes out in excitement, arching his back slightly to let his cock land against your hole, and then he pushes forward slowly. The bulbous head spreads your lips and stretches out your slick pussy with ease as he continues to speak. âFeel that?â
Your eyes flutter shut at the sensation, fingernails already digging into his shoulders at the anticipation as your legs loosen around him. He continues to push forward, inch by inch, painfully slow as if he wants you to feel the burn and stretch even while being as wet as you are.Â
âAhââ He confirms for himself as he watches your face, wincing, mouth falling open. âYeah, you feel it.â
God, yeah. You do. You feel the weight of his size inside of you, stretching you open so good he probably wouldnât even have to move for it to hurt. But he does move, he does continue to slide in, savoring every second of your walls quivering and suffocating his cock.Â
âGoddamn,â He groans, lifting up on both arms and bracing himself as he looks down, only to find heâs only slid half of his dick into you, and already youâre about as breathless as he is. âDidnât realize how tight youâd actually beââÂ
He chokes when he says it, sliding out little by little before fucking back in, pushing just a bit more into you.
âSâokay.â You try to reassure him, but itâs more for you than it is for him. You really didnât think a cock could feel so big that it actually hurts, yet, here you are. âIâm adjusting.â
Jake moans at your broken voice, no longer holding himself back to look at your pussy grip him when he pulls out slightly. He looks at your face instead, witnessing how you take all of it in one solid movement from him. All of it, until he can feel his pelvis rest against your clit and your entire body stiffens in a tight hug around his body.Â
âMhm,â He leans back down now, humming against your cheek as he tries to control the urge to fuck. âTaking all of it, arenât you?â
With those words, he slides out slightly before pushing back in again, trying to force your pussy to relax so that he can stop holding his breath. One hand finds its way to your leg to hold onto, the other holding himself up beside your head, and he justâŠwatches.Â
Little by little, he thrusts. Plunging into you in short-tight snaps of his hips just to watch your tits jiggle with the movements, up until he really, really canât hold back anymore.Â
You feel his cock leave you almost entirely, only to slam right back in and cause your vision to go white with a pang of pleasure. Your loud yelp pairs well with his relieved sigh of a grunt, and it appears that this is what breaks him entirely.Â
That single, full thrust, lets him fall forward and nuzzle his nose against your neck and his body just goes. Instinctually chasing the deepest parts inside of you, hitting your cervix with each thrust only to drag back and make your toes go numb at the way your g-spot feels entirely too sensitive with this alone.
And god, Jake loves the way you cling through it. The way you moan each time he bottoms out, the way your nails cut into his back and the way your legs continuously fail to stay wrapped around him. HeâŠ
Oh no.
âI can go all nightââ He breathes out through his relentless thrusts, almost as if heâs pleading with you. âI swear, Iâm not doneââ He continues to cut off his own words with choked moans as he pulls back and leans up, frantically forgetting to apologize over the fact that heâs already about to cum again.
And you feel him try to slide out, that face he made twice before already alerting you that he really must have so much to pump out of himself at this point. You donât mind if heâs about to hit a third orgasm, in fact, youâre glad.
Your legs hold him in place as he fights to pull out, his eyes snapping to you in realization after the second time he tries.Â
âNo fucking way, youâ you want it?â His eyebrows fall into that of a relieved release as he, too, falls right back down against your chest and lets his hips fuck freely.Â
Heâs not controlling it at this point. You feel him stretch you open more through his orgasm, rolling his hips but not pulling out even in the slightest now. Moving back and forth, as if trying to stuff you impossibly full while he releases those thick ropes of cum. ItâŠfeels so good even with the way the base of his cock continues to swirl and loosen you up in a painful stretch that almost feels like heâs ripping you open. Still, the pain is gone as he shakes on top of you, in fact, you feel your clit throb at the feeling of how big he is, of how hard he manages to stay.Â
He didnât even fuck you that roughly before this, but it feels like youâre already ruined. Ruined enough to want more. Enough to need more.Â
âBet that feels good,â You chuckle against his hair, feeling each pulse of him and loving the way he pants against your ear. âNot having to pull out, knowing you can fuck me for as long as you want.â
That only pushes his orgasm to hit harder. He thought he was nearing the end of it, but instead, his body goes into overdrive as more pulses of cum shoot out of him at your words. Thereâs soâŠso much of it he can give you. And if this is what you want, heâs the perfect man to do it for you.Â
âDonât say that, oh godââ Jake mumbles through the end of his orgasm, keeping himself tucked nice and deep into you as he releases his body weight and makes you feel slightly suffocated under him. âPlease.â
Well, he minds his manners well enough, you shrug under him, clenching around his length unintentionally and reminding him that you genuinely can go all night, just like him.
Reminding him that maybe you really will just lock him up in this room all tonight, all tomorrow. He seems into the idea anyway, right? Both of you just free-use sex dolls for the time beingâŠHell yeah.
And as Jake catches his breath, he finally lifts up, pulling you with him, and sits you directly on his lap now.
âKeep going then, donât let it get soft.â He nearly whimpers, solely due to the sensitivity his cock is now offering and the fact that after that third orgasm, he truly is gaining the ability to go flaccid between orgasms.Â
And you follow his direction, though not entirely how he wanted you to. Instead of rolling your hips, you slip him right out of you and sink your face down between his legs, loving the way his cum spills out of you all the while. You donât even say anything, not that youâd need to. He watches you, a smirk forming on his lips as he raises an arm and throws it over his eyes.Â
âShit, Youâre so my type.â He groans out of the sexual frustration that still bubbles within him. You look so good down there with his cock just inches from your mouth. God, no woman has been able to go down on him for too long despite really fucking wishing they would.Â
His hips always lose control, they donât like face fucking, heâs too big to fit, theyâre gagging too much, their jaw is hurting. What the fuck ever. Look at you, blinking up at him like you want nothing more in the world than to take it all down your throat. Ah, fuck, if you did thatâŠ
His hips buck up on instinct, forcing you to hold him down with your arms as you lick your lips.Â
âYou really live up to your promise, you know that?â You smile with warmed cheeks as you speak, blowing air gently against the head of his cock. Itâs softened up a little, but itâs no longer going flaccid. Youâre sure that the second you work it into your mouth, heâs going to be blocking your airways.Â
Good.Â
âYou say that like Iâm not overwhelming you with all of this,â He chuckles as he moves his arm from his face and down to yours. âMost girls would have already sent me home.â
You circle your lips around the bulbous head, tasting the remnants of both you and him as you gently suckle before popping off and licking your lips.Â
âWell, Jakeââ You look back down and lend his cock a little kiss. âIâm not most girls. Besides, most guys get their nut and leave me hanging. Youâve gotten, what? Three orgasms by now? And youâre still in my bed? Wanting me to lock you up tomorrow too? What a fucking win.â
Jake rolls his eyes because you donât even know the fucking half of it. If he were a normal guy, he probably would have done the same thing. Maybe not to you, but to others? Yeah. The thing is, heâs not like most guys. And youâre right in saying youâre not like most girls either, consideringâŠyour sex drive appears to be just as insatiable as his.
âFuck, let me eat you out againââ Jake groans now, needing to pleasure you again, aroused by the fact that heâs basically met a female version of himself. Even if heâs just exaggerating and making himself believe such a woman could exist close enough to him. âLet meâ AhhâŠâ
You cut off his words, dragging a loud and sensual moan from him as you sink down. Mostly to shut him up, mostly so you can return the favor for him from earlier before letting him have another lick of you. After all, you truly do appreciate him for all of this.Â
âMmfââ You mumble unintentionally, feeling each inch of his length that you swallow up pressing your tongue further and further down in your mouth. Up until youâre entirely open mouthed on him, gagging yourself when he hits your throat only to angle yourself up on your knees to point it straight down your throat instead.
It hurts, but you close your eyes in concentration, breathing through each gag, ignoring the dribble of saliva that runs from the corners of your mouth andâ you swallow.
Mostly because you canât suck. Again and again, you swallow around him just to stimulate his length, the girth stretching your lips out to the point you feel your jaw could break, but it doesnât and it wonât.Â
Within an instant of taking his whole length down your throat, you feel his hands in your hair. Your ears are ringing, otherwise you would also be listening to him choke on his words at how youâre doing this to him. All of it. Youâre taking him in full, not leaving an inch out, seemingly proving that your mouth can be fucked just as good as your cunt.
Heâs in heaven, head spinning as you stimulate him through each gag and sputtered out chokes of a moan. He canât help it when he grabs your hair, he really doesnât mean it when he pushes your head down while pressing his hips up. Essentially choking you and suffocating you in full with a paused hold.Â
You brace yourself on his hips when he does this, squeezing your eyes shut and continuously gagging from the way he abuses your mouth with just that small movement, and thenâ he pulls back.
âAhh,â He groans, snapping his hips back and holding you by the hair to keep you from chasing. âYou like that?â He continues, letting you breathe but not answer at all before heâs pushing your head right back down, holding you there again and fucking his hips up repeatedly into your throat this time.Â
The sounds are pornographic at best, concerning at worst. You, searching for air somewhere between his thrusts, the sounds of wet sputters, drooling, whimpered groans from him, and desperate gasps and gags from you. Truly, Jake is in heaven right now. With you, specifically, youâve brought him to heaven.
For you, it feels like he does this forever. Youâre losing the ability to comprehend what breathing ever was in the first place, thankfully though, Jake can see the tears pouring from your eyes and feel the way you fall slightly limp, letting him do as he pleases before he realizesâ he may actually be overwhelming you now.
He snaps his hips back quickly, pulling you up and off of the last remaining inches of his weeping cock before taking a good, long look at your gasped breath and abused lips. Tongue licking out and eyes stained.Â
âIâm sorry, fuck, Iââ
Instantly you press yourself down on him once again, resuming your original position of sliding him in until you canât stand the feeling in your throat, gagging and swallowing around him time and time again. You feel proud of it, proud of the pain, proud of the suffocation.Â
Fucking proud to not be finished with him compared to every other person, apparently.Â
âJesusââ He groans now, his entire body slouching against your bed as he slams his head back and starts petting your cheeks. âItâs like you were born for this. For me.â
You hum around the gags, growing accustomed to swallowing him up and feeling your jaw strain. And just a few moments later, you pull up with a deep breath, a smile, and you start rubbing your jaw.Â
âMaybe I was,â You try to talk dirty, wanting to drive him insane. âYou taste so good.â You add, dipping down again to lick a long stripe up the underside of his balls up to his tip. âAny girl should be proud to say youâd fuck her mouth like that.â
A twitch, he rolls his eyes back and clenches his jaw.Â
âHow are you soâŠâ He breathes out, reaching his hands blindly for you, only to feel you shift on the bed and essentially sit your tits into both of his hands. âperfect?â
You shrug when he opens his eyes, youâre now hovering over him, both hands covering his on your tits as you force him to squeeze and grope.Â
âMaybe itâs best to not ask questions.â You tilt your head playfully. âBesides, if Iâm lucky maybe youâll stop trying to find other girls to fuck. They canât take care of you like I will, anyway.â
Oh, you damn fucking right they wonât.Â
âYou can have it any time you want.â Jake smiles, relishing in your tits warming under his palms, watching the way you hover over him tall and proud on your knees. âCould play with you every day and never get bored.âÂ
You feel him move his hand from under yours, going straight between your legs and sliding not two, but three fingers into you with ease.
âStill so wet too,â He hums, eyes narrowing at you with that same pretty grin. âYou always this horny?â
You shake your head.Â
âNot usually, you just turn me on.âÂ
Jake feels proud of that. He doesnât feel like the odd ball with a dick that canât be satiated no matter how many pussies he plows through in a night. Which, again, for the past year has been a total of zero pussy. You getting turned on by that makes him feelâŠcapable. Makes him feel like maybe he can be put to use by a pretty girl.Â
Makes him feel like his need is wanted and well taken care of.Â
âSo, I can keep calling you?â He asks now, fucking his fingers up, loving the warmth and slide, anticipating for when he gets to bury his cock in you again.Â
âMhm.â You hum, closing your eyes to enjoy the pleasure of how deep even his fingers reach. Kind of ready for him to stop talking and just focus on what heâs doing to you.
âEven if itâs every single day?â He continues to ask, now using his thumb against your clit. âEven if I need you in the middle of the night?â
Anything he wants if he can keep hitting your g-spot like this.Â
âYes, Jake,â You sigh out of aroused frustration, now wiggling your hips to chase that stimulation inside of you. âIâll give you the fucking key to my apartment if you want. Just let you walk right in and start fucking me.â
His fingers move faster at the image, the implication of not just free-use, but true free use. Real free-use.Â
âYeah? Wake you up with my cock sliding into you?â He urges you to keep talking, now removing his other hand from your chest and circling it around his cock. âJust walk right in and get my mouth on you while all your friends are here?â
You lend a surprised chuckle, but pay no mind to his words past the arousal it brings to you. Youâd tell him about how you have a total of like two friends, and half of the time theyâre too busy to show up anyway. Still, the image is hot at the moment. All of it is hot.Â
âYouâd let me?â He continues pressing every button both physically and mentally, unaware of how easy it is for him to talk as if itâs a normal conversation solely because itâs kind of his general state of living at this point. You, on the other hand, are not used to having a full conversation while your g-spot gets abused. âEven if youâre not home? Let you come home and find me fucking myself for you?â
Oh.
âFuckââ You groan out at the image, feeling his fingers reach so perfectly, thinking of how it would feel to walk into your apartment just to see this pretty man chasing that tight ring of fingers his fist creates. Probably so turned on and frustrated that youâre not homeâŠso frustrated that all he could do is drop to the floor and start fucking. âGod, yeah.â
So thatâs what youâre into. You love that heâs that pathetic to fuck. And lucky for you, heâs more than willing to continue to be that fucking pathetic.Â
âDoes that feel good?â He hums now, watching how you fuck yourself against his fingers, lifting slightly to lick against your nipple. âCan I use my cock again?â He babbles almost, brain on constant loop of you actually giving him free reign of your apartment someday so he can come andââPlease, do this on my cock.â
This is the second time heâs asked you to ride it, and you think that may be one time too many. You almost feel guilty for taking him down your throat first, but then again, you donât. Your body vibrates knowing youâre about to split yourself open on him again, only this time having full control.Â
âYou want me to sit on it, Jake?â You smile, thrusting your hips down and sinking his fingers into you so deep that you physically can see his brain malfunction.Â
The frantic nod he gives is somehow less powerful than how he lifts his hips, forcing you higher on your knees as his fingers slip out of you and immediately land in his mouth.Â
Man, this guy must love the taste of pussy. The image of him doing that alone is insanely arousing to you as you lend him a short nod and slide back, your pussy sucking in the head of his cock instantly as if the two of you move together so well, that it was only natural to not need a guiding hand for it.Â
He sinks his head deep into the mattress with the way you try to sink down on him. He holds his breath with those same fingers in his mouth, squeezing his eyes shut at how tight you still are, how wet you still are.Â
And heâs shocked, almost, at the way you just keep sliding down. Not letting yourself re-adjust to his size, holding your own breath and bracing yourself on his abdomen just to keep balance and you wince through the stretch.Â
âThatâs it.â Jake soothes your hips as you sit, clenching around each one of his twitches inside of you. âDoing so good.â He breathes out this time, trying to hold back his moan just for a moment as he awaits your moan first.
And it comes quickly when you lean back rather than against him, arms by his knees as you practically present his cock to him buried entirely into you with this position. He lifts his head and stares at it before reaching his thumb to your clit, immediately pressing hard circles against it.Â
âRide it,â He pleads now. âGod, please ride it.â He loses his mind at the image, really, as you do start moving.Â
Pained whimpers falling from your lips as you circle your hips, fucking just an inch of him in and out of yourself, forcing the deepest part of your pussy to take the abuse more than anything else. And you know he loves it with the way his thumb stops rubbing your clit, with the way he canât decide on if he should look or throw his head back and fall into the sensation.Â
Itâs really cute to witness, and youâd lean forward to kiss him if you had the strength to do it, but you donât. In fact, all the strength you have is currently bubbling up inside of you with a sharp, almost burning sensation.Â
You know exactly what this is. Youâve practiced it time and time again alone in this bed.Â
âOh, oh shit, Jakeââ You groan as you frantically start moving your hips through the full and splitting feeling of him inside of you. Your voice sounds so panicked, it almost scares him. And honestly? Had he not have finger fucked you against your g-spot previously perhaps you could last longer on him, but no.Â
âWhatâ Whatâs wrong?!â Jakeâs voice is broken when he quickly leans up, hugging around you as you continue to ride against him, faster now, chasing, chasing, chasing.Â
Pushing, pushing, pushing.
âNo, no!â You moan out, shoving him back against the bed and now lifting entirely from his length before slapping your own clit, fast, rough circled motions before each slap. âOh, shit!â You nearly yell, witnessing it squirt from your body straight against his abdomen and chest.Â
Jake just watches, mouth agape and eyes wide.Â
âOhââ He stares. âOh yeah?âÂ
And youâre not even done when he seemingly takes full control. Allowing all that squirt to fall out of you, ignoring your shaking legs, tipping you straight back and plunging his cock right back into that release of pressure inside of you.
âYou just werenât gonna tell me you could do that?â He grunts against your ear, fucking into you so hard and so fast that your orgasm just keeps coming. It feels too good to speak, too good to breathe.Â
Even as it subsides and youâre trying to catch your breath, he doesnât let you. He just keeps going, grunting incoherently against your ear, snapping his hips harder than you think heâs probably ever done before.Â
Honestly, with each yelp you let out, your sensitivity goes from being unbearably painful toâ
âDo it againââ He urges you. âGive me another one.â Babbling, cooing, fucking moaning all over your neck until his lips hit yours.Â
Somehow, that gives him exactly what he wants as he feels your legs tense up and fall open around him. Your pelvis slamming into his so hard that itâs, quite literally, splashing out of you in loud and painful sounds.Â
âYeah, yeah, yeah.â He nods and whispers against your tongue, sucking it into his mouth before licking into yours, nearly rabid with the way heâs both kissing and fucking you, he canât help it. He forgot words the second he felt the gush rush past his length, trying to force it out of you only for him to go harder. Like hell heâs not going to feel you literally squirt on his cock. âSo fucking messy.â
At one point, you think you might have actually died. Youâre not sure but you swear you saw him fucking you in third person for two solid seconds before being slammed right back into your body. The pleasure genuinely is so overwhelming thatâŠwell, suddenly you understand why girls probably think heâs too much.
But goddamn heâsâŠso good. Like, you remember him mentioning his body count through his one-sided sext session with you and you can argue his inexperience probably made this that much better. Heâs a fucking natural.Â
And as he continues fucking into you, all you can do is lend him a distant smile. Youâre definitely not experiencing real life at this moment, and you know he sees it with the way he lifts and keeps his eyes on your zoned out expression.Â
âLook at you.â He echoes against your walls. âSo, so pretty.âÂ
And he just keeps doing that, whispering praises, working you through his presumed last orgasm of the night because he genuinely canât not fill you up with his cum one last time before letting you rest.Â
ă»ă»ă»ă»ă»ă»ă»ă»ă»ă»ă»ă»ă»ă»
The rest didnât last long, but to be fair you didnât need it to. All night, and all day. That promise was kept and Jake remained insatiable throughout all the time he spent with you.
To the point you very nearly felt strange about him leaving. Like youâd grown so accustomed to having someone literally attached to you at the dick that you knew the loneliness and silence would hit you a little too hard once he leaves.Â
And, well, he does leave in a sense, but not completely.Â
Though you never truly meant that offer in the midst of sex-talk, Jake seemed to have clinged to the idea of it. Lock him up, but still give him the key.Â
Never in your life would have imagined giving a person the key to your apartment, and yetâŠthere he goes. Backing out of a guest parking spot in front of your building with your spare fucking apartment key in his pocket right next to those fucking panties.Â
#enhypen smut#jake smut#jake sim smut#sim jaeyun smut#enha smut#enhypen x reader#enha x you#jaeyun x reader#jake x reader#enhypen hard hours#enha hard hours
10K notes
·
View notes
Text
đą. đ°đąđ„đđđ„đšđ°đđ«đŹ
synop: you and vik get caught âmessing aroundâ in the lab by jayce; who surprisingly wants to join in on the fun.
wc: 1.8k
includes: straight smut, p w/o p, fem!reader, jayce x reader x viktor, slight vöyeurism, oral (m receiving), slight dirty talk, threesome, bottom!viktor
extra: part 2 is here! reblogs are appreciated <3
âdonât worry,â you whisper, fingers twirling along a red tie before smoothing down the front of viktorâs vest. âi sent jayce out on an errand run and he wonât be back for a little bit. just enjoy this v.â you add with a hum.
viktor looks up through his pretty lashes at you. he leans back against his desk, practically sits on top of it to keep weight off of his leg, as you two stand inside of the lab. he had been working far too hard recently and the only way you could keep him distracted long enough not to think about anything involving his work was to pleasure him. it was the same way trying to get him to sleep every once and awhile, when he would sneak into your room. you had never suggested doing it in the lab thoughâŠand the thought thrilled you just as much as it thrilled him; even if he thought it was a terrible idea.
âw-we shouldnât. not here in the lab and what ifââ viktor mumbles but his words end in a soft gasp as your fingers begin to untuck his shirt from his pants.
âviktor,â you chirp as you fall to your knees in front of him, unbuttoning the front of his pants and pulling them down ever so slightly. âyou need to take a break. be a good boy and just relax.â
your fingers are just grabbing the hem of his underwear when the door to the lab is being thrown open and jayceâs large figure enters the room. âhey, i was looking for this thing you asked for but iââ jayce had begun to speak, his eyes pointed down as he entered the room, before he finally looked up and caught the two of his friends in the act.
you freeze in your spot, eyes widening as you stare at jayce from the floor. a scarlet red blush is spreading across your face, you can feel the heat on your cheeks in an instant and youâre sure you match not only jayceâs shocked face but viktorâs as well; and you canât even bring yourself to look up at him. you probably stay like that for a little longer than you shouldâve until jayce clears his throat and you and viktor alike scramble from each other.
âwe!â you start as you stand up straight and as quick as you possibly can. âwait itâs not what it looks like! we were uh just uhmââ you ramble before looking at viktor to help dig both of you out of this hole. but heâs busied himself with trying to zip his pants back up, making it far more obvious if it hadnât been already. you sigh, turning your face off to the side to stare at a small spot on the floor, unable to look jayce in the eye.
âdoâŠyou do this often?â jayceâs voice cuts through the built up silence in the room like a knife.
you shake your head quickly but viktor speaks up for you instead. ânever in the lab.â he mutters.
âitâs unprofessional, we get it, letâs just drop it and forget thisââ you begin to add but the sound of the door closing with a lock interrupts your rambling. when you finally bring your gaze to jayce, his eyes are soft but clear in their intentions. and it was his turn to no longer be able to look at the two of you.
âcan iâŠwatch?â he whispers under his breath.
and with three little words, everything changes between all three of you.
now, jayce leans against the labâs desk as viktor leans back against his chest. jayâs strong hands fully support viktor as youâve returned to your spot in front of him. you had never in your life thought jayce might have been interested in whatever you and viktor had going on. maybe you just assumed he already had a lover and never brought it up again. but now his hazel eyes stare down at you, just as viktorâs amber eyes also watch you, both with a hunger to their eye. it almost made you nervous, being watched, but your fingers once again hook around viktorâs underwear and pull down, ignoring the jitters that hum under your skin.
your hand wraps around vikâs semi hard cock and you give it a soft tug, rubbing right up the shaft until the tip. there was a new feeling in the air around all 3 of you. breaths being held, eyes watching ever so closely, the slight tremble to your hand. it had been different when it was just the two of you enjoying midnight meetings but now with jayce there tooâŠit felt far more scandalous and naughty.
âtell me what it feels like.â jayce whispers, purposely placing his chin into the crook of viktorâs neck, as his hands slowly run up along vikâs chest.
your own hand continues to move against viktorâs shaft, stroking him slowly up and down, moving to press your lips against his head.
âmmph, her fingers are a little cold,â viktor replies with a low groan. his chest rising and falling in quicker succession as he begins to get turned on. âbut it feels good.â he adds. and his honesty makes you smile a little.
you move your hand faster in return to his praise. trailing your fingers along his head, pressing your thumb into the slit of his cöck, where heâs growing sensitive and causing him to gasp softly. you take the moment to lean forward and capture the head of his cock inside of your mouth. drinking in the sight of viktorâs eyes fluttering, his fingers tightening onto whatever he can grasp, as your mouth wraps around him.
âkeep going viktor.â jayce instructs as you watch him place hot, heavy kisses against vikâs throat. one of his hands groping his thin chest and waist.
âw-warm! itâs so warm and wet,â vik breaks. heâs fully hard now as you suck on his head, making him whimper at the feeling. âfeelsâahâreally good.â he adds with a groan as his eyes return to watching you.
you can feel his thighs tighten as you swallow more of his cöck, continuing to use your hand to stroke up to your lips. you watch every expression that crosses viktorâs face along with jayceâs fingers that slowly begin to take off his vest. strips him of his vest and then works on unbuttoning his brown shirt underneath.
jayce keeps laying hot kisses along the back of his neck and on his throat, slumped over and threatening to swallow all of viktorâs thin frame.
the sight makes you somewhat giddy and excited to see what jayce does. but it never distracts you from making viktor feel good as well. sucking a little harder, spit bubbling up at the sides of your lips as you sink further down onto his lengthy shaft. your eyes are almost falling close to help you focus as you swallow more and more of him, but jayceâs voice catches your attention once again.
âshe looks so pretty like that, doesnât she, vik? makinâ you feel so good.â he whispers against just as pretty, pale skin. his words cause vik to stutter, hips lifting up and forcing you to swallow the rest of him. and you do so with ease.
you truly wouldnât have guessed jayce was so good at dirty talk but you welcomed any surprises at this point. viktor simply whines in response, head hanging low, gaze still on you as you continue your routine of sucking him off.
jayce stands to his full height then, hanging over viktor just enough so he could turn his face and capture his lips. viktorâs eyes widen in response but he does nothing to stop jayce; no, instead heâs melting into the kiss. you watch with eager curiosity as their tongues clash together, jayce easily winning in the battle of dominance, as one big hand of his moves up to gently caress viktorâs throat.
fuck, was it hot watching them. you can feel your pussy throbbing at the sight just as you can feel yourself growing wet against your panties. you squeeze your thighs together, slipping a hand down below to press your fingers into your core. the best you can through the pants you wear for the moment but the pressure is enough to make you groan. you move your lips faster along viktorâs shaft, sucking harsher and sloppier to bring him closer to his end.
the change of pace and jayceâs tongue surely has viktor coming undone quicker than usual. for he breaks the kiss with a harsh whine. âiâm close!â vik gasps, tossing his head back onto jayceâs shoulder.
jayce presses a quick kiss against his jaw before his hazel eyes return to watch you suck viktor off. his eyes are hazy and full of lust as he fixes his intense stare on what you do; which makes you shiver with newfound pleasure under his sight. his strong gaze makes you press your fingers into your pussy once again, seeking any form of satisfaction you could get for the moment.
âlook viktor,â jayce instructs as his hand smooths over viktorâs lower abdomen. âsheâs touching herself.â
viktorâs breath hitches in his throat but he moves his own lust filled gaze down to stare at you. with both of them returning to stare at you, you palm yourself harder through your pants. moving your hips in sync to every bob of your head, needy and desperate as things evolve, all the while you moan around vikâs cock.
itâs all too much for viktor as his hips lift and he thrusts wildly into your mouth. âgoing toâ!â he cries softly, body tightening, throwing his full weight back against jayce.
but jayce is quicker. one hand grabs your hair and pulls you off of vikâs twitching cock before he takes his hand and wraps it around where your mouth had just left. âstick out your tongue. i wanna see the mess he makes all over your face.â he grunts, pumping his fist quickly along vikâs entire shaft. his hand is much bigger than yours and it wraps entirely around viktor with ease, and it makes vik lose all control he mightâve pretended to have.
but you do as your told and swiftly stick your tongue out to catch whatever you can. all it takes is viktor staring at your tongue and jayceâs hand jerking him off to finish his orgasm. viktor forces himself to watch as he comes, fingers grasping and gripping onto anything he can thatâs near him as he tumbles over the edge with a sharp cry.
your name, along with jayceâs name, leaves viktorâs lips in a pathetic whimper as he comes. can feel the sticky substance coat your tongue, cheek, and chin with each rope jayce rubs out of him. all the while viktor and jayce watch as he makes a mess across your lips and face, never once looking anywhere else.
not until vik is completely spent, limp against jayce who holds him up effortlessly. the only noise now in the room is the shared panting between all three of you. you lick your lips, trying to clean yourself up just a little, before it was your turn to break the silence.
âletâs keep going.â
#zevrra zevrra!#spicy zev!!#arcane#jayce talis#viktor arcane#arcane jayce#jayce x viktor#jayce x reader#viktor x reader#fem!reader#mdni#jayce smut#jayvik#viktor smut#arcane smut#arcane fic#jayvik x reader#have i watched the show? no#am i afraid this is ooc? yes#but my god i had to write this#i need both of them i fear#right NEOW
5K notes
·
View notes
Text
Shameless
Tags: dad!Toji x fem!reader, modern!au, nsfw, mdni, breeding kink, he calls himself daddy
Synopsis: Youâre Tojiâs live-in nanny. He wants to breed you, and he successfully does so.
An: This is my story on ao3!! You can read it here. If youâre feeling extra nice, a kudos would be cool too.
Being a single dad was hard. Toji learned quickly after his wife's death that he in fact couldn't do this alone. The way little Megumi's big eyes looked up to him for direction... him of all people. He was not cut out for this. Megumi's mom was a wonderful mother: sweet, nurturing, and patient. Toji really didn't know if he was any of those things.
Luckily, her life insurance provided Toji with a relatively comfortable life combined with his job in construction of course. Construction might be his vice. He got away from home for 12 hours a day, and he worked so hard that his brain was mush by the time he was home. Not that he didn't love his son, he did, but every time he looked at Megumi he saw his sweet late wife. He also saw his short comings as a father.
Babysitters quit on him regularly. It was always the same excuse. "Megumi's an angel, but I can't be here 7 days a week. I have a life too." It was incredibly annoying. They'd stay for Megumi but left due to another one of his shortcomings.
Another one quit. That would be the third one this month. "Listen Mr. Fushiguro, I know a friend. She does this sort of thing on a different level. Have you ever considered having a live-in nanny?"
That stupid girl's question enlightened Toji. He had completely forgotten that live-in nannies still existed. After getting her friend's number and paying her what he owed her for her time, Toji relaxed on the couch with little Megumi tucked into his side. The three-year-old was happily babbling next to him, enamored by Toji's phone that was in his hand.
Toji looked at the number dialed into his phone, and he sighed. He was tired of making cold calls to potential babysitters like he was some desperate whore, but maybe, maybe this would be different. He wouldn't mind having a live-in nanny. His house wouldn't mind it either. Toji would be able to finally breathe. No more coming home from 12 hour shifts to pop something to eat in the microwave and wash the dishes. He wouldn't even have to see this so-called nanny often. He could pick up more hours at work with all of his new freedom of not having to worry about pissing off the babysitter.
*** *** ***
Either way, that's how you ended up in Toji's house. For the past three months you had taken care of Megumi, cleaned and deep cleaned his entire house, cooked him plenty of dinners from scratch, and even did his laundry the exact way he preferred. His house has never looked better, and Megumi had never looked so happy.
Despite being here for three months, you barely saw Toji. He seemed to avoid you like the plague and only answer with one-worded answers, which was fine. This was your job, not your actual family. There was no need for extensive communications. Though, you had gushed to your friend plenty over text about how hot "Mr. Fushiguro" was. He was conventionally attractive, yes. But you also always had a thing for the brooding types, and dammit, Toji was brooding. There was also something to be said about how he came home in the evenings. A black wifebeater clinging to his skin from a long day of working out in the sun. His jeans would be dirty from the work he was doing. His skin glistening from a thin sheen of sweat. His hair was always a mess. Goddammit. It was enough to make you feel fertile.
It was early in the morning, Toji was getting ready to go to work. Megumi had woken up, crying for his papa not to leave him. He's going through an extra clingy phase. He's usually okay once Toji's gone.
"Papa!" Megumi cried as Toji entered the living room. You had Megumi in your lap, rocking him with a sleepy look on your face. His tears were wetting your shirt, but you didn't seem to mind.
"He'll be back tonight, Gumi." You shooshed him and continued to try to rock him and pat his back.
Toji's face was unreadable. He was never one to get all upset over Megumi's crying, but hearing his son cry out for him tugged on his heartstrings extra this morning. Then, there was you. You were a godsend to Toji's life. Getting a live-in nanny was one of the best decisions he had ever made. Above that, you were excellent with Megumi. You were sweet... nurturing... patient. He hated how seeing you with his son made him feel. It almost felt like maybe 2 kids wouldn't be that big of a deal. Maybe 3. One on each of your legs and another one swelling in your belly. God. He was disgusted in himself for thinking like that.
"I love you, kiddo." Toji said quickly as he leaned down, giving Megumi's forehead a quick peck. The toddler made grabby hands for him. It was almost enough to make him stay home. Almost. Toji's eyes met yours as he was still leaned over. His face was close to yours. The tension between them were palpable. The moment felt like eternity between them.
Then, a black credit card was in view. "I need new work gloves. Get the extra thick rubber ones, will ya? Also, get whatever you and the kid want. I'll be back late tonight." He handed you the card and sauntered out of the house despite Megumi's pleas for him to stay. You looked at the Amex black card and blinked a couple of times. Only the top earners in the world had cards like this. Toji was just an average blue collar dad... It made you wonder how he got a card like this.
You still spent that shit though.
*** *** ***
Toji looked at his phone on the jobsite. No one dared to tell him to put it away. Toji was the best most competent worker out on the field. He could work circles around supervisors and project managers alike, and he was damn smart. He didn't need a pencil and paper or a calculator to make quick conversions in his head. So, most people stayed out of his way.
He smirked and chuckled at the notifications rolling in from his bank. 78.97 at Target. 21.25 at McDonald's. 43.52 at Barnes and Noble. 9.24 at Starbucks. He was happy you and Megumi were getting to have a little shopping spree.
You were also great at keeping him updated. You sent him lots of pictures and videos of Megumi. He cherished each one of them, immediately getting some of them printed and hung up in his house. There was even a picture of you and Megumi proudly displayed in the living room. In his mind, you were an integral part of the family. The "family" simply would not function if it weren't for you.
A fond smile spread across his face as he opened his messages. A picture of Megumi's little hands trying to fit into his new gloves that she had bought him. Great. She got the right ones. "I think he wants to be just like daddy :)", the message read.
Oh.
Oh.
The twitch that just occurred in his pants should be punishable in a court of law. In no way should he have gotten turned on by that. You were just being nice. It was a normal thing for people to refer to him as "daddy" in that context. It never affected him in the way it was right now.
So anyways, that's how he ended up in the port-a-potty busting a load all over a picture of you that he had on his phone. After the shock of his orgasm that came quicker than ever, he looked down, disappointed in himself. He wasn't some horny teenage boy anymore. This was just downright deplorable. Begrudgingly, he wiped his phone clean from his sins. Post-nut clarity swirled his brain. He couldn't believe he just did that.
He called your number. He had to make things right.
"Hello? Is everything okay?" You immediately asked. After living with Toji for some time now, you learned that he doesn't just call people. He will absolutely decline a call to just text and ask what's up.
"Everything is fine." He replied, trying to hide his amusement. It was cute that you seemed so worried for him. "Are you still in town?"
"Yeah, Megumi and I are about to leave Starbucks and head home. Why? What's up?" You responded back to him. He could hear Megumi happily singing a song in the background.
"You know you spent 152 dollars today?" Toji asked as he popped his back up against the port-a-potty door. He had a lazy smirk on his face.
"Oh- crap. I'm sorry. You can take whatever you see fit out of my pay-" He interrupted your nonsense quickly.
"Do you think I'm poor?" His voice was amused, not angry like you expected it to be.
"What-? No.. no, sir. I was just-"
"I told you to get whatever you and the kid want. Don't come back home until your certain that you can't carry the amount of stuff you bought in one trip." He said quickly. His stomach was already coiling from how you called him sir. He grimaced as he felt another twitch. I just took care of you dammit.
"Oh... oh, okay? Are you su-" Click. He hung up on you. One too many dumb questions. You looked at Megumi as he strapped into the backseat of your car. He looked intrigued by the conversation even though you knew he realistically had no idea what was just said. "Daddy said we have to go to the toy store." You grinned at him. He was smiling and clapping over the word "toy".
234.22 at Toys-R-Us. 122.56 at Lego. 208.38 at Aerie. 88.21 at Ulta Beauty. Another 94.48 at Barnes and Noble.
The way Toji grinned each time he felt that familiar vibration of his phone go off, meaning another notification from his bank was off-putting. Workers on the jobsite never seen him so happy. It was his penance for being such a horny freaky fuck.
*** *** ***
It was later that same evening. Megumi was in the living room surrounded by toys and crafting materials. He was currently drawing all sorts of "shadow animals" as he called them. You would of course look and nod your head, congratulating him on each terribly drawn animal. You acted like that was the best damn wolf-bear-owl hybrid you ever saw.
You were in the kitchen cooking chicken and dumplings. The clock on the stove read seven p.m. You didn't expect to see Toji at all this evening. He said he was working late this morning. Usually, that meant he was dragging his feet in through the door until well past ten p.m.
Still, you made him a serving of chicken and dumpling soup. You always did. Even when he worked late, you would put him a helping of dinner in the microwave to keep warm. You never knew, but he was always delighted by that. He ate the dinners each time.
A key jingling in the door handle caught your attention while you were getting Megumi settled at the dining room table. Three-year-olds were so hard to manage: too small to eat by themselves but too big to be locked in a high chair.
Toji stepped into the living room with a small grunt. He smirked as he looked around at his destroyed living room. Toys, crayons, and pieces of "artwork" were strewn all about the place. He glanced up towards you and Megumi in the kitchen. He took note of how your face was flushed and surprised.
"Papa!" Megumi happily shouted before the little bastard ran from your grasp to go hug on Toji's legs. His dad smiled as he looked down at Megumi, and he used his hand to mess up Megumi's hair affectionately.
"Go eat your food, kiddo." Toji said warmly to his son. Megumi happily obliged and ran right back to his seat right next to you, and you fed him a spoonful of the soup.
"You're home early." You stated the obvious.
Toji would never tell you, but he left early because he missed you two.
"Don't sound too happy to see me." He remarked in a sarcastic tone.
"What-? No, I just.. would've cleaned up more had I known you would be home so soon..." You responded. Megumi was sitting beside you whining for another bite of food. You snapped out of your surprise, and you fed him another bite of chicken and dumplings.
"Why? I don't give a damn what this place looks like." Toji said with a small nonchalant shrug. He walked through the living room, carefully stepping over the toys. Before you had become his nanny, this was how his house normally looked: messy, lived in. "I've got a bowl of dinner in the microwave. My kid's happy and fed. I couldn't care less what that living room looks like."
Your heart fluttered at the sentiment. Toji was easy to please. He really just wanted what was best for his kid, and that was you. "I like making sure you have nothing to worry about." You replied. He looked at you with an unreadable expression. It looked like he might've wanted to say something, but he had backed out last minute. He hummed and walked towards his bedroom to shower the dirt, sweat, and grime from the day.
While Toji showered, you had finished feeding Megumi and yourself. You allowed Megumi to have about an hour of TV time before bed. He really enjoyed old X-Men cartoons. You turned them on for him and parked him on the couch, wrapped up in a blanket.
You hummed softly as you worked in the kitchen. You packed meal prep containers of soup for Toji to take for lunch for the next couple of days. Then, you were washing dishes in front of the sink.
*** *** ***
"I like making sure you have nothing to worry about." Your words repeated in Toji's head over and over like a mantra. He hadn't felt so... cared for in a long, long time. It made his heart feel full, which was an unfamiliar feeling for him. A less unfamiliar feeling was his dick standing fully erect and at attention. He groaned quietly as he leaned his head back in the shower.
Something had to be in the air recently. He was a grown man with desires, sure. But this was a new record for him. Ever since you started being a live-in nanny for him, the boners were a daily thing. Hell, twice or three times a day sometimes. He's tried everything... Well, okay, maybe not everything, but he's tried cold showers and staying away from you. Neither of those things work to soothe him.
His hand was gliding up and down his length for the second time today. He was facing the shower wall with his arm propped up on it, supporting his head. Damn you for making him feel like a slave to his desires. You wanted to make sure he had nothing to worry about? Then, you should be the one in here fixing this damn mess, not him. He pitifully rutted into his hand, imaging he's plunging deep into you. Imagining the multiple ways he'd fuck the hell out of you is the only thing that soothes the ache, but this time he didn't see an end in sight.
He gritted his teeth together, and he balled up his fist, rearing back before stopping himself. He's not a teenager anymore. He can't punch walls. He took a deep breath and turned the shower off. No, this won't do. He needs to fix this at the source.
After quickly drying off and getting dressed, he walked back into the kitchen. His eyes scanned over the house. Megumi was enthralled by the TV, and you were washing dishes. Perfect.
He slowly approached you from behind. He could tell you didn't hear him as you were still softly humming. Usually, you would stop humming if he entered the kitchen. He never understood why. The sounds of your melancholic hums were beautiful and soothing to him.
He was directly behind you, and his hands gently cupped your hips. You immediately flinched and made a soft scream that was quickly silenced by one of his hands. "Shh, we don't want to disturb the little brat, do we?" Toji said into your ear. His warm breath ghosted over the shell of your ear, making you shiver.
Toji's eyes flicked over towards the living room. Megumi hadn't moved an inch. Perfect.
Toji slowly released your mouth. To his delight, you didn't make a sound. He could hear how your breath was slightly labored from him scaring you. A small chuckle rose from his throat. His hands went back to your hips, and he pressed himself against your voluptuous ass. A hum of approval escaped him. He could see your hands gripping the countertops.
"Nod your head. You like this? Want me to keep pressing myself against you?" Toji whispered into your ear. You took your bottom lip between your teeth, and you nodded your head eagerly, giving him consent.
"Dirty fucking girl." His voice was like a growl in your ear as he started to move his hips, dragging his length up and down along you. You could feel each inch of his length beckoning for you. "I knew you'd take whatever I gave you, but this? Letting me grind against you like a pathetic teenager while my son is in the living room? You're such a fucking slut." His hands were digging into your hips as he continued his controlled motions.
"Mnn.. fuck.." You softly whimpered out. Thank god the X-Men were currently in a loud fight scene.
You slightly frowned as you suddenly didn't feel Toji behind you anymore. You were about to turn around and ask what he was doing, but his fingers curling into the waistband of your leggings told you everything you needed to know. "Toji-" You managed to whisper out. No way could you two do this while Megumi was in the next room over.
"Shut up." Toji interrupted you. He had taken his throbbing length out of his sleeping pants, and he had a look of concentration on his face as he angled himself right at your entrance. "You have no fucking idea how long I've needed this. So just be a good girl, shut up, and take what I give you."
Direct orders from your boss. Who were you to deny the man who just spoiled you all day today?
It was a tight fit. Toji wasn't a gentleman. He didn't prep you with his fingers or mouth. This wasn't love making. It was hardly fucking. This was fulfilling a need.
"God... fuck. I didn't expect you to be that tight." He growled into your neck as he held your hips still against him. It felt like he was splitting you apart. You couldn't even respond to him.
He noticed how tightly you were gripping the counter and how you weren't responding to him. Your knuckles were turning white. He almost felt guilty. His hand came around the front of you, and he gently rubbed the swollen bundle of nerves. "Shhh... You can take it. I know you can." He whispered into your ear as it was taking every last shred of self-restraint not to fuck you into oblivion right on this counter. He slowly pulled back until just his tip was inside, and he pushed all the way back in. "That's it. There's my good girl." He praised in your ear. It was not lost on him that he felt you get wetter with each praise.
He hesitated, but he said it anyway, "You wanna be a good girl for daddy, don't you?" He whispered into your ear. That phrase made you tremble in his arms and nod your head. He slowly pulled back out and pushed right back in, taking you slowly. "That's right... hngh, fuck." He moaned into your ear. "You want to be fucked by daddy. You want to take his cock like a good girl. Take it." His hips started to move with more conviction.
You were already so out of it. This was like a dirty fantasy come true. You couldn't help but check the TV a few times to make sure X-Men was still playing. You were still worried that Megumi might run in here for whatever reason and see you bent over in front of his dad. You knew it was unlikely. Megumi could watch that TV like a zombie all day if you let him. Besides, you would be able to hear the small pitter-patter of his footsteps.
"Stop looking at the fucking TV. Trust me." Toji growled into your ear as he forced your hips down onto him roughly. A noiseless gasp escaped you. He wasn't small, and he knew that. He was using it to his advantage.
"Fuck." He groaned quietly as he rubbed you with a bit more fervor. You could already feel that familiar warm feeling coiling in your stomach. "I'm going to fuck a baby into you. You were fucking made for this. Made for raising my kids and taking my fucking load." He was spewing nonsense into your ear, but in the moment, you couldn't help but nod and moan. "You were made for me." He proclaimed as his hips continued harshly snapping into your backside. Somehow the sounds were masked.
"You want that, don't you?" He asked as he bit down on your neck then lapped at the bite mark with his tongue.
"Yes, daddy!" You quietly exclaimed. His thrusts only increased in power. Your eyes started to cross, getting lost in pleasure.
"Fuck. You're gonna look so perfect pregnant with my baby. I won't let you have a break. As soon as one comes out; I'm puttin' another one in you." He continued on yapping about how many kids he was going to pump into you. "I'll breed you again and again." His thrusts were heavy and brutal. You couldn't take it anymore.
He moaned as he felt you clenching around him, finishing all over his cock. It was enough to drive him overboard. He pumped you full of cum until you were sure some of it was seeping out.
There was a peaceful moment of dizzy highness for you two. Toji panted against your back. For the first time in while, he's felt satisfied. A soft amused laugh escaped him as he heard the iconic X-Men episode coming to an end. He swiftly pulled out of you, and he tried to ignore that little whimper of protest you let out. He tucked himself back into his pants, and he pulled your leggings and panties back up for you since you were still a trembling mess over the counter.
"Alright Kiddo, c'mon. Time for bed." Toji said as he sauntered off into the living room as if he didn't just rearrange your guts. He put Megumi to bed that night, and he cleaned up the living room for you, allowing for you to recover in his bed for round two. He was much more of a gentleman for round two.
*** *** ***
"Hey... I know I ain't been to see you in a while. I'm sorry." Toji said as he sat down on the grassy ground. "I was letting life pass me by for too damn long." He said as he took a wet washcloth and began to wash up his late wife's gravestone. "I'm doing better now, so don't worry about me."
"Megumi's growing like a weed. I'm sorry I didn't bring him to see you... I just don't know how to explain it to him." Toji's voice was full of guilt as he dragged the wet washcloth against the stone. "He's a good kid though. He looks just like you, damn bastard." He softly laughed, knowing his wife would've struck him over the side of the head for calling Megumi a damn bastard.
"Listen... I met a girl." He leaned his head over the gravestone. It had been close to three months since you and Toji started sleeping together. There wasn't a formal label to your relationship, but it didn't feel necessary. You two both knew you were sleeping exclusively with each other. "I think you'd like her, or maybe you wouldn't since she's fucking your husband. But either way... I-" He choked up a bit as he held onto the cold stone. "I feel so fucking guilty... I know you're not coming home anytime soon, but I just... I need your blessing. If you can somehow hear me, please... I never asked you for anything until I asked you to marry me. Now, I'm asking... please somehow show me you approve of this."
"She's good for me... She takes good care of Megumi. He's so damn attached to her somedays." Toji softly laughed as he remembered how a few nights ago Megumi crawled into bed with you and him because he had a nightmare. Instead of taking to Toji like he normally does, he crawled into your arms. Toji had never felt so damn proud and slighted at the same time.
"I should get going. Give me a sign though.. Something that tells me you approve." He finished his visit with his wife, and he went home.
*** *** ***
That night at dinner, Megumi sped into the kitchen with an action figure in his hand. He was pretending to be Batman. "Gumi, I've told you three times. Stop running." You said as you gave the small child a look. Toji smirked as he knew that look good and well. It was the look a mom gave as a warning. Megumi was on his last warning.
"I'm sorry, mama." Megumi apologized, causing for both you and Toji to freeze right in your tracks. Megumi had never called you mama before. He always said your name.
Your heart swelled in your chest. It was a feeling of affection and guilt. "Oh no... baby.." You said softly as you took his hand. You lead him into the living room, and you crouched down, showing him a picture of his mom to him. "That's mama." You gently corrected him.
Toji watched the scene like a hawk from the dinner table. His heart was pounding in his chest. He had never been shy about telling Megumi who his mom was, but he hadn't exactly been forthcoming about how his mom passed away when he was a small baby.
Megumi pointed at the picture. "Mama." He said quietly. You nodded and patted his head.
"That's right." You praised affectionately. He then turned his attention to you. and he poked your chest with his tiny finger.
"Mama." He said, pointing at you.
"No-"
"It's alright." Toji spoke up from his seat at the dinner table.
"I don't want him to be confused..." You replied as you slowly stood back up, looking at Toji.
"He doesn't sound confused to me." He retorted with a small grin. You turned your attention back to Megumi, and Toji looked up towards the ceiling. "Thank you." He muttered so quietly before kissing the necklace that hung around his neck. He had his wife's blessing. This proved it.
After finishing his dinner, Toji joined you two in the living room. You and Megumi were curled up on each side of his while watching that old X-Men cartoon. Suddenly, Megumi rose from the couch. You and Toji watched him with a hint of confusion.
"What is he doing?" You softly asked Toji as Megumi bent over, and he looked between his legs at both you and Toji.
"I have no fucking id-" He was about to respond, but then, it hit him. "Get up." He said as he stood up from the couch. He quickly grabbed his phone, keys, and wallet like a madman.
"What? What? Is something wrong?" You asked as you had never seen Toji move this fast. You quickly got up too.
"Nothing's wrong. Come on. We're going to the store." He grunted as he swooped Megumi into his arms.
You were confused and in denial when Toji bought a pregnancy test and made you take it. Now, both of you were waiting outside of the bathroom for the five minutes to be over. "This is crazy, Toji. I'm not pregnant."
"It's an old wives' tale. When babies do that, it's supposed to mean their looking for their sibling." Toji said with a nonchalant shrug as if what he said was matter-of-fact. "My mother told me that's how she knew she was pregnant with me."
The timer went off on his phone, and both of you fought to get into the bathroom first. He eventually overpowered you and snatched the pregnancy test off the counter quickly. "Oh." He said quietly. The room went still.
Suddenly, your heart was racing. "What is it? Is it negative?" You asked a hint of disappointment hit you. You didn't know why, but a small part of you hoped for it to be positive.
"Oh, you're fucking getting it tonight." Toji smirked as he turned the pregnancy test over. Two pink lines were clear as day on the test. You're pregnant.
Tags: @lemonlimecrystal-blog @theuniversesnepobaby
#jjk#jjk fanfic#fanfic#jujutsu kaisen#drabble#jjk suggestive#jjk smut#toji x you#toji smut#jjk toji#toji fushiguro#toji x reader#jujustsu kaisen x reader
5K notes
·
View notes
Text
Chapter 2 of Blurr storyline >:D
âActuallyâ says Swerve âI'm an alien.â
âHehâ giggles Blurr âsorry, my head is all cloudy, I thought you said you were an alien.â
Part one
Holy shit I actually managed to finish itâŠ..Oh. My god.
Under the cut—ïž
Is it stupid to miss someone who doesn't even exist?
Probably yes, but hey, Swerve already has several degrees, might as well get another one. A degree in Stupidity or something. Who cares?
For the first few days after waking up from his coma, he feels like he's going crazy. Everybody has realistic dreams, right? The ones where you can scrutinize every angle, memorize every face and smell and sound. The ones that make you lie still for a while after waking up, grasping at every thing you can. Trying to memorize everyone you meet, imprint them in your head.
Because apart from your mind, they don't exist anywhere else. So that's your only way to keep them.
It never works. Obviously. Details slip away. Impressions fade. Just a couple days, and you won't be able to recall anything but the main events from memory.
Wait, hell, not days. Cycles.
His life is a weird, pathetic, fantastical circus. Earth term. Heh. There are no circuses on Cybertron, haha!
But Swerve remembers. And the word circus, and the smell of asphalt, and rains that were made of water not acid. Remembers the English language. Can speak it fluently, even if you wake him up in the middle of the night.
Remembers his work schedule and remembers which company makes the best details. And Tailgate with his bright blue uniform and Wheeljack with his endless experiments and Swindle with his expensive coat and of course...yeah, no, don't think of Blurr, don't think of Blurr, don't. Don't.
He'd heard about it. Read about it, too. Mechs waking up from comas and doing wild things. Some forgot how to speak at all, some gained a new skill, some lived a whole life while they slept.
Articles tell Swerve, don't worry, what you've experienced isn't unique. The doctor tells Swerve that the same thing has happened to others before you, it will be okay, it will pass.
Swerve isn't sure he wants it to pass.
He's been in a coma for who knows how long. The medic said it was caused by an internal trauma that decided to suddenly get worse. One minute he's recharging , the next he's gone. Internal injuries are insidious.
So it turns out. One day he just disappeared from the world because he was busy slowly dying in his room and no one noticed until a thief tried to sneak in. The only one who came to him was a Mech who wanted to steal his stuff. Huh.
That feels revolting. Swerve liked to think he had enough friends. Or at least enough good connections. Enough those who should have noticed his absence, right?
Apparently not. His shifts at work were reassigned, his contacts never texted him first, his...
His small persona wasn't important enough for anyone to notice his disappearance.
Would his human coworkers notice? Would Tailgate have noticed? Or Jazz? Swindle?
Jazz would have noticed, he was always surprisingly attentive when it came to his friends. And he was friends with just about everybody.
Swindle would probably get upset about the money he'd lost.
It's amazing how much his brain-- wait, no, his processor. How much his processor could create to entertain him. It's a more elaborate world than the most complex series Swerve has ever known. And that scrap had forty-six seasons and fifteen encyclopedias!
People, Earth, a bunch of new languages and rules and all for the sake of the end being like, OOPS! ...it was all a dream. Hilarious. Worst plot twist ever. Swerve hates it when stories go in this direction even more than when they kill off their characters.
In his humble opinion, death is better than the revelation that none of the experiences made sense or had any value. In terms of writing scripts obviously. Haha.
He's busy roaming haphazardly through his own memory. He's looking, comparing, trying to find inconsistencies or things that don't make sense. All the stuff that usually gives away the fact that what happened was a dream.
Most of his memories are occupied by--No. Frag.
Don't think about Blurr, don't think about Blurr, don't think..
He's thinking about Blurr. A lot.
Blurr occupies a surprisingly important role in his comatose dreams.
In the time he spent just looking at him, you could hand-build an entire Mech. Maybe even three. Swerve remembers picking up every bit of merch he could reach with his paycheck. Watching hundreds of videos and buying every new themed drink even if it was a flavor he didn't like.
Then spent a surprising amount of time resenting Blurr for not living up to his fantasies.
Blurr's behavior hadn't helped either, of course, but now, looking back at the past himself Swerve thinks that.. Oh wow. You weren't just annoyed at him. You blamed him for ruining your beautiful fantasy. You were having so much fun entertaining yourself with thoughts of this marvelous image, and he came along and corrupted it. Poisoned the well you drank joy from.
But that's not quite true, Swerve thinks.
Blurr was more complicated than that. But exactly how, he'll never know. All he has are his memories, and those memories are cut short at the most interesting point.
Swerve knows this plot twist. The asshole character that no one loves at the last second turns out to not be what everyone thought, but it's too late.
Oh no, he's not an evil jerk, he's actually traumatized. Oh no, he wasn't bad, he was actually secretly helping everyone. You thought he was awful? Well now you're going to feel awful reading fanfics.
Serevus Spayne didn't actually betray the main character's dad, no no, he was in love with him! Bam. Drama.
Swerve isn't a big fan of this stuff. He likes his characters developed properly. But he can't deny the appeal of a character leaving behind a bunch of questions you thought you knew the answer to.
Uggh.
The doctor was wrong. These thoughts don't go away. These memories don't dull.
Swerve just boils in them, constantly getting stuck in his own head. Sometimes he puts English words into his speech and everyone looks at him strangely. Sometimes he reflexively says some inside joke and no one gets it and he's left standing there with an awkward smile. Because. Guys, you don't understand, if my coworkers were here they'd think it's hilarious. I promise, in my fantasy world, it's funny.
When he gets a job on one of the Autobot ships, he accepts it thinking it might be a good distraction from his thoughts.
When he happens to see Prowl with a tiny human on his shoulder in the corridor of that ship, he thinks he's lost his mind.
The whole thing. The whole load-bearing structure on which his picture of the world has been held suddenly gives a lurch. Living your life in a super realistic dream is wild, but meeting a character from your dream in real life??
Freaking cursed.
Jazz looks puzzled by his reaction, but all Swerve can think about are two things.
One, if Jazz is here, does that mean everything else was real, too???
Two - holy shit, Jazz is tiny.
It never occurred to him. But he didn't really know what size humans were. Well, sure, he could measure it in numbers. But he was among humans himself. And about the same size. He was generally even shorter than most of them.
If Jazz is so small, he can't imagine how tiny Tailgate would be. Or--
He can feel his spark freeze. In fact, he can almost hear the sound of a string breaking in his processor. Does that mean Blurr is real too? Real and just as tiny and currently dead? Because Swerve was there but was too convinced it was all just a dream to help?
He's going to get sick.
He needs to talk to Jazz right now.
____________
Swerve taps his fingers nervously on the countertop. Come on. You're good at talking. Talking is your greatest skill. All you have to do is tell someone else about your comatose hallucinations and hope they don't think you're crazy.
They're sitting at a table at the bar. More specifically Swerve and Prowl are sitting at the table, and Jazz is sitting right on the table. (God he's so small).
âSo uh. I got injured a while back and...uh...well, it got worse, turned out important systems were affected and I kind of. I was in a coma. For a really long time.â
Jazz frowns
âOh. Iâm sorry to hear that.â
He speaks in a mildly wonky Common, Swerve notes to himself. He waves his servo a little too cheerfully in response.
â'Ay it's no big deal really. I saw a whole other world while I was asleep and like. See, I thought it was just my fantasies, but it seemed very real and...â
Swerve mentally crosses his fingers.
âAnd it was about this planet called Earth and about people who were building their own inanimate huge robots to fight huge aliens and their boss wanted to launch Mechs into space, so he picked the best of the pilots named Jazz and sent him on this test mission and...â
Jazz looks at him with huge eyes before switching to English in surprise.
âMech, what the hell?â
â...And we lost him...â finishes Swerve with a sad smile.
Before thinking for a bit, and adding.
âI'm going to show you a trick I can do.â
And then projects his holoform onto the table in front of him.
This. It's weird. Not in a way that would tilt it in the direction of unnatural. More like walking around in his comfy indoor pajamas right in the middle of the street. Being human is familiar to him, but being human amongst huge Cybertronians? Strange. And a little creepy.
Prowl looks confused.
Jazz looks absolutely frantic.
âSWERVE????â
Swerve doesn't even manage to respond, only to smile in relief before Jazz rakes him into his arms. In his holoform, Jazz feels right again. He's taller than Swerve and oh boy, he's alive and unharmed. To think everyone thought he was dead, staying up nights trying to find what was left of him, and he was on the other side of the universe the whole time?
Swerve chuckles into Jazz's shoulder. Then picks him up and spins him around a couple times just because he needs something to get his energy out. Man, it's nice to hug people. Warm and soft, eight out of ten.
Jazz pulls away but still stays standing very close. Swerve can literally see the happy stars in his eyes.
âDude, I'm not complaining but what...how???? You just kinda..."
Swerve laughs and twitches his eyebrows playfully.
âI still speak English, you don't have to torture yourself with Common.â
âOh thank fuck.â Jazz throws his hands up dramatically âyou're my favorite person right now.â
There is a polite click of the vocalizer resetting above their heads.
âIâ Prowl says âvery glad you two are happy but I'd like some explanationâ
Swerve presses his head into his shoulders guiltily. Prowl has the unique ability to always sound like you've done something wrong in front of him.
Although Jazz doesn't seem to feel the same way?
âShort version - I sleepwalked my holoform to another planet.â
He pauses dramatically.
âThe long version is...â
Jazz raises his hand
âWhat's a holoform?â
Swerve sighs.
âIt's a holographic avatar that I can project using a holomatter generator. Sort of like a remote controlled game character.â
Jazz whistles impressed. And then immediately turns back to Prowl
âHave you been able to do that all this time too?â
Prowl hums
âI can create an avatar, but it takes a lot of practice to make it at least believable. And to fully perceive the world through it takes even more. It's a whole new technology. What Swerve does is essentially an art form. Sophisticated and impressively detailed may I add.â
Swerve shrugs shyly. He's still using the holoform to stand on the table next to Jazz. Looking up to speak to Prowl isn't exactly comfortable, but Jazz definitely looks like he's been missing the human presence. Swerve isn't human, but he might as well be.
âThank you. Yes! Uh. Anyway, it seems while I was in a coma my processor projected my avatar onto Earth and I...let's just say I lived there for a while.â
Jazz laughs
âDude. So you're telling me you were basically sleepwalking the whole time?â
â I was.â
Prowl frowns.
âBut the range limit of the holomatter generator is only four hundred miles...â
â.... I had a lot of practice...â
Jazz claps his hands.
âYou learned a whole other language! Got an ID!. You had a job!!!â
âI got carried away,â Swerve admits.
Jazz scratches the back of his head, still looking very amused
âHow many degrees did you get? Haha wait no, I have a better question, did you pass your driver's license?â
âTwo. And I failed my driver's exam.â
âDude you are literally a car without a driver's license!â collapses Jazz on the table with laughter.
Swerve blows the hair out of his face
âSays you who retook the physical several times. You couldn't pass the "being human" exam.â
Jazz just wheezes incoherently in response. Prowl looks alarmed.
âDon't worry, that's him getting excited. So...where have I been...â
Swerve nervously shoves his hands into his pockets
â...Do either of you two know where Earth is?â
Prowl twitches his door wings
âNo. Since Jazz was teleported we don't have much clues.â
Swerve grimaces. Scrap. Of course nothing's going to be that easy. He's also been, like,....teleported.
He stands there for a couple minutes and just feels fifteen different emotions rise up in his head at once. A crooked, unsteady smile creeps across his face.
He's thinking.
Oh hell, yeah! I knew it wasn't a dream!
Then he remembers the mess he left behind.
Oh, no, it wasn't a dream.
Jazz puts a hand on his shoulder.
âSwer... Swerve? Dude, are you okay?â
âAh frag..â Swerve says weakly âit wasn't a dream.â
Jazz looks...puzzled.
âIs that bad?â
Swerve remembers his friends. Remembers the Mecha program. Remembers fire and smoke and screams and rumbling and crackling flames. Ashes flying through the air and the smell of burnt wires. He remembers blood and debris and...
âIt's...complicated.â
This wasn't just a stupid plot twist he'd dreamed up because he'd watched too many shows. This wasn't a hallucination or a disembodied fantasy that just happened to linger in his head. This was real. His friends exist out there somewhere. His work and his collections and his little apartment...
And Blurr. Was real. Or still is? Swerve doesn't know. Blurr wasn't a product of his imagination. He was real and what he did was real and Swerve left him there alone, bleeding and trapped in rubble and tiny and...
Hahahahah oh fUCK.
He doesn't like this plot. It's too much. Too much to handle, too complicated, too ambiguous.
It's also probably too late.
But he can't leave it like this, right? Blurr went into the damn burning building just because of the possibility that there might be someone alive in there.
And Swerve doesn't even have to go through the flames. He has to look. He has to try at least.
Jazz glares at him with a worried look on his face
â That expression you have...â
Swerve puts the smile back on his face.
âI need to get to Earth.â
___________________
Swerve is not an idiot.
Or maybe more accurately an idiot, but with several degrees.
He's well aware that finding Earth in space with only a description of it is impossible. Which leaves him with two options.
Ask the Quintessons. Or look for it himself.
The first sounds like death. The second like coma. Swerve has exquisite enough taste to know which is better.
He just needs to do some preliminary reserch.....
Jazz, now back inside his Mech looks doubtful.
âYou're not going to die suddenly and for no reason, are you?â
Swerve laughs.
âPfffff what, no of course not, would I kill myself hah. No no, look I'll just put myself in stasis for a bit. Send myself to Earth. And try to figure out where it is from there. Get the coordinates. If I'm lucky, I can see what Space Bridge the local Quintessons use. All you'll have to do is wake me up after a while.â
âIt's not harmful?â
Swerve makes an uncertain gesture with his hand...servo.
âIf I have enough fuel. And an additional connection to an external generator.â
Jazz tilts his head
â Why are you so eager to get to Earth? Don't get me wrong, I miss it too and want to go back, but.â
Swerve bites his knuckles.
â I have some unfinished business?â
âPshhhh you sound like a ghost.â
Swerve only laughs in response.
_______________
Concentration is tricky.
Swerve tries to think about Earth. And not to think about the fact that he doesn't know where it is. If he's already been there once, he might as well go there again yes? In theory? Perhaps?
Except for the possibility that his sleepwalking just takes him to random planets. That would be very inconvenient. It would be a whole new level of lost
Shit. No. Earth. Think Earth.
What's he even gonna do when he gets there? How far away is it? Swerve is very talented with his holomatter generator, but if it's really far away... maybe he should reset some settings.
He mentally starts going through his options. Does he need tangibility? Probably not. Come to think of it, it would only make him more vulnerable and take a lot of energy. Yeah, the tangibility has to go. What else? Touch, too. Sight and hearing should stay, that's not even a question, but colors and textures are not really necessary.
The amount of detail and picture quality can be reduced as well. His holoform will become colorless and grainy and will probably ripple with static, but he'll survive it.
After he finishes making changes to his holoform he thinks about his old stuff left in his house. Then about the posters. Then reminds himself that he needs to focus on the goal or he'll never find Blurr and...oh FUCK his phone! Where was his phone when he disappeared? Was it found?? There were so many personal things on that phone, he's hoping the phone was burned under the rubble. Either that or the arriving investigators will find his browser history and he'll go into another coma from pure embarrassment.
He blinks dazedly when he realizes he has loads of rocks in front of his eyes. Oh..Did he screw up? Did he end up on the wrong planet? Is it a cave or--
Then he notices the odd shape of the ârocksâ and. Oh, no. It's not a cave. It's charred concrete debris.
This is the place where he was last.
He hastily looks around. Anxiety creeps up the back of his neck, makes him feel like something slippery and cold is crawling over his skin. There is nothing but ruins all around.
Blurr is not here. The place where his Mech was lying is empty.
Which means he was at least found and dragged out. Dead or alive.
Swerve's bites his knuckles. Okay.
All right.
He's got things to do.
_______________
He's trying to stay out of sight. Which isn't hard, considering he's just a hologram. At first, he just sneaks around in the quiet areas. Then proceeds to do a facepalm and start teleporting. Think, Swerve. Did you read all those comic books for nothing? Superheroes who couldn't really use their superpowers creatively always annoyed him. And he does, in fact, have a superpower. Gotta get creative, right?
He stops and looks at himself again. His holoform is going static and is a dull white color. He thinks for a bit, and then shrinks himself. Thinks some more, and makes himself almost transparent. There's no way he could pass as a normal human right now, so he'd better just do his best to avoid being seen by anyone.
He looks around thoughtfully. Hmm. Even if he's going to be absolutely tiny, he needs to make sure no one sees him, otherwise the whole base will think the Quintessons are now spying on them through holograms or something.
Breaking the rules feels...it's exciting.
All his ..human life here he hadn't thought about it, but if he threw away the rules he was used to about what people could or couldn't do...
He looks up in a sudden rush of sly genius. All people look under their feet when they walk, but how many look up? And how many of them notice the barely visible tiny holoform hiding just behind the blinding lamps?
The answer is probably none.
Swerve projects himself onto the ceiling and mentally pats himself on the shoulder for his impressive intellectual accomplishments. A creativity degree should definitely be a thing.
A degree in spying on the Quintessons' ships wouldn't hurt him either.
Fortunately sneaking onto their ship turns out not to be that difficult. Swerve makes himself absurdly tiny and hides in the darkest corners that no one would ever think to look into. Why hasn't anyone thought of using holoforms for spying before? Could he be the first to think of it? He doesn't know, but he mentally decides to patent the idea.
Finding the Space Bridge is surprisingly easy. The local Quintesson fleet is clearly used to being the dominant force in space. And that's generally logical. Even if humanity collects a mountain of money from somewhere to throw a dozen Mechs into space - there will be thousands of monsters waiting for them. In such a situation, you don't have to hide, the guards are enough.
Well done, well done, don't hide, Swerve thinks, copying the coordinates and address of the space bridge to himself. You have absolutely nothing to fear here, he thinks, so stay where you are and don't move. Please and thank you.
Once the coordinates are obtained, he... has some freedom to explore. And he uses it for probably the most boring-sounding thing in the world. He returns to his usual workplace.
Itâs simple. As damning as the Mecha program was, Swerve loved his job in it. He loved his position in the assembly shop. And he missed his friends.
He quickly teleports through several rooms, continuing to hide close to the lamps. Tailgate is here. Alive and unharmed. Wheeljack is too, though his face has some scars added to it. It's great to see them again, even if he can't talk to them right now. No one will probably react well to a grainy unexplainable hologram. He's just glad to know they're okay and honestly, the last thing he needs is paranoid Onslaught installing extra signal jammers.
It takes time to find Blurr. Partly because Swerve is terrified of what he might find if he started looking. So he goes to check the death lists first, and only after flipping through and re-reading them three times does he finally exhale in relief.
Blurr's name isn't there.
So his smug, shiny ass must be around here somewhere.
He checks the hangar. Flips through the Mech launch logs and feels an uncomfortable knot begin to form in his chest. Blurr's Mech has never been repaired or launched even once since the incident. Its plating has been replaced with new, well polished, and put in a prominent place where anyone who wants to can take a picture of it. But all the internal systems are destroyed. This machine hasn't been used for anything other than being a beautiful exhibit.
That's...something's wrong.
He checks offices and schedules as well as eavesdropping on a few conversations and ends up secretly following Swindle, who is arguing loudly with someone on the phone. He says something about deals and how he doesn't need anyone meddling in his business. Then he talks about how he's got everything under control and the person on the phone is âa dumbass who's making drama out of nothingâ and that âhe doesn't need anyone's handouts". Then he sighs and says, âyou know how celebs are. Dumb and dramatic. You can't take their words literally.â
Then drops the call and for a couple seconds looks like he's just had a large bill taken right out of his hand. Curses again, but in a quieter voice. Leafs through his contacts and stops at the one signed 'free ice'.
âBlurr? Where are you? Wha...ah, no wait. No, the advertising agency called. No, liste...Can you shut up for one second?Where are you?
Uh-huh....... Uh-huh.Okay.
Give me half an hour...okay, yeah.â
This is it, Swerve thinks.
He shrinks himself further and teleports under the collar of Swindle's coat.
He wants to take a look. Just. Just a peek. Make sure everything's all right. Then he can go about his original mission in peace. He watches Swindle get in his car and drive off somewhere. Swerve doesn't recognize this part of town. The houses here are much nicer than where he lived. The streets are cleaner.
He tucks himself further under the coat collar. He's not going to be a stalker or anything, but he's worried and he doesn't have time to wait for Blurr himself to show up for work. Just one little look and that's it.
Swindle's car stops outside a beautiful, shiny hospital. Swerve nervously tries to bite his knuckles, but remembers he's disabled touch in his holoform. Shit? Shit.
Shit. Shit. Shit. Shit. Shi
Blurr looks like a mangled corpse.
Okay, not really. His left side that faces the door to the hospital room looks like a mangled corpse and that's the first thing that catches Swerve's eye when he's inside.
Blurr is pale and thin and his hands are covered in bandages. The left side of his face has been turned into an absolute ugly nightmare. A piece of his ear is missing. In the place of the left eye is a creepy empty hole.
Suddenly Swerve realizes why Blurr didn't show up for work. You can't even show him to his coworkers like that, not just to the public.
Blurr turns his head and the spell breaks. His lips stretch into a cocky smile.
â'Got bored without me Swindle?â
Swindle doesn't show the slightest emotion at the gruesome sight. He casually pulls a chair over to the hospital bed and sits down.
âShockwave is trying to sneak a new project into the program. And he's slowly swaying investors to his side, using you as an excuse. Tells everyone you're a poor martyr he can save if only he's given the green light from above.â
Blurr wrinkles his nose.
âNot that he's wrong. The doctors say I need to pick a new career because with this...â he jerks his head to the left implying his damaged half, â neither racing nor piloting is an option for me anymore. I'm out of your project.â
Then he stops talking for a few seconds and raises an eyebrow curiously.
âYou wouldn't have come here in person just to say that. Why are you really here?â
Swindle adjusts his glasses
âHave I ever told you why I made the contract with you?â
âBecause you like moneyâ Blurr says without hesitation.
Swindle lets out a quiet chuckle.
âFair point. But money wasn't my only priority.â
He pauses for a second. Gets up. Draws the curtains in the room. Checks to make sure no one is outside the door.
Goes back to his seat.
âYou didn't see what the Mecha project was like before. Brutality and absolute disregard for human rights multiplied by a thousand. People were desperate and no one cared to maintain any decency.â
He raises his hand when Blurr rushes to say something.
âNo no, listen to me. If you think things are bad now, you're right. But it used to be much. Much, much worse.â
Swindle sighs and adjusts his glasses again
âVortex was taken as a boy. He wasn't even out of high school when they shoved him into the lab. Me and Onslaught were pulled right out of the college exams. The others were no better, although they were usually a little older. My point is that it was allowed. It's what the superiors could do and no one told them no.â
Blurr tilts his head and gets a little all turned around to see Swindle better with his right eye.
âBut you... found a way to change that, didn't you?
Swindle rubs the bridge of his nose
âI have no power over my own superiors. But Onslaught and I have come up with a plan. Look. I'll put it in simple terms for you. Above me is my boss, and above him is another boss, and so on but at the very end of that chain are people from the government. The investors. So we figured out a way to cut through the chain of command and influence them directly. Make them worry about us. It's a kind of social shield. Onslaught is a genius.â
Blurr blinks.
âWhy are you telling me all this.â
Swindle takes off his hat and just. Crumples it in his hands. The back of his head shows numerous scars and the glint of tiny metal implants barely visible behind his hair.
âYou're that shield right now, Blurr. You can't leave.â
Blurr's eye widens
âIs that why you insisted on âbefriendingâ me with all those bullshitters?â
âI needed to make sure that in their minds we weren't just a military unit. To keep them thinking that we're as human as they are. So I gave Project Mecha a face.â He tugs on the hat again, âYour face.â
Blurr runs his fingers through his hair
âShockwave can't do whatever he wants cause...because of me his efforts would risk going public and people wouldn't like it and it would ruin the reputation of our investors-and-they'd-cut-off-his-funding.â
Swindle puts his hat back on.
âExactly.â That's why he's being so persistent right now. He knows you're vulnerable and he wants to capitalize on the opportunity. Make you part of his new project and tell the world about it. Make publicity his weapon, too.â
The lamp above them flickers faintly. Blurr takes a breath. Long and tired and exhausted and. a bit doomed.
Swindle puts a hand on his shoulder.
âPlease. Don't leave. At least not now. And don't let Shockwave get to you. That would open the way for him to get to the rest of the pilots you represent.â
They just. Sit in silence for a while. Blurr quickly taps a finger on his knee. A rapid tap-tap-tap-tap-tap-tap-tap-tap-tap-tap.
Swindle moves his hand away and gets up from his chair.
âThere's a press conference coming up. I need you to be there. I've told everyone who needs to know that the problem is exaggerated and you're fine but they need to see you.â
Blurr smiles sourly.
âMy lawyer is going to charge you such a handsome sum for that stunt.â
Swindle laughs, but his cardboard advertising smile doesn't reach his eyes.
âWeâll see about that. Seriously though. I need you there.â
Blurr bites his lip.
âI..donât know...â
Swerve...doesn't know what to think of that.
Blurr shows up for the press conference. Late, but he makes it. Just as Shockwave is presenting his new project in his amazingly well-pitched voice. Blurr swings the door open and waltzes lazily inside, skillfully pretending not to notice the many cameras and eyes instantly directed at him.
Swerve, whose memory is still fresh thinks for a second that no, no this can't be the same person. Past Blurr looked like a wreck. Past Blurr was tense and tired and hunched over. Present Blurr couldn't look more alive. His shoulders are squared proudly, there's that cheerful springiness and grace in his stride. He moves with ease and confidence. Smoothly.
The left side of his face is neatly covered with fresh white bandages. Carefully, without leaving the even the slightest gap through which his injury could be seen. His hands are hidden under a fancy jacket. He smiles wide and bright and squints playfully toward the table.
The very embodiment of nonchalance. The few pilots sitting in the audience roll their eyes.
Swindle breathes out a barely perceptible sigh of relief. Swerve, once again using Swindle's collar as a tactical cover, can't help but let out a silent triumphant laugh. Maybe slightly more nervous than he is supposed to be.
Blurr sends Swindle a sly, sharp smile and even knowing it wasn't meant for him, Swerve feels his cheeks heat up.
Ah, damn it.
Swerve breaks the rules. He tells himself that peeking is fraught with consequences when it comes to military organizations, but he can't stop himself from being curious. And from worry, too.
And now that he knows where to look, he sees things he'd rather not see.
Blurr ... is crumbling.
Swerve doesn't know all the details and consequences, but that incident did leave a mark.
But every time Swindle calls him and says âI need you at some place in two hoursâ he gets up and assembles himself into a human being. Like a goddamn puzzle. Tapes and covers the burned half of his face. Covers up the bruises and hides the stitches. Fixes his hair and sets off on shaky legs to pretend he's fine.
He smiles so bright and carefree, laughs so sweet and beautiful that no one would ever think that even standing up sometimes hurts.
And continues to act like a jerk of course.
The only difference is that this time Swerve mentally gives him the presumption of innocence before he starts judging.
Blurr does a lot of things that seem rude. He also does a lot of things that are actually rude and figuring them out without resorting to alien superpowers would be nearly impossible.
When the pilots see Blurr sitting right on the table while negotiating with investors, they roll their eyes and make comments about his terrible manners. Or when he stops showing up for even the most basic, rudimentary training.
Or when he develops that stupid habit of leaning his elbows on people standing next to him.
It's the model behavior of a rich, spoiled brat.
It's also an inconspicuous way to stay upright.
Employees say âthat dumbass has never heard of personal space.â
Investors say, âI think he likes me.â
Blurr leans on Swindle's shoulder and through a charming smile says âDon't move or I'm gonna fall.â
Swindle also keeping up the smile discreetly holds him back, pretending it's a friendly half hug.
Swerve feels like yelling at both of them, but he's not sure what for exactly. For one thing, Blurr in his condition is very VERY VERY contraindicated to even get out of bed, let alone participate in social activities.
On the other hand, without Blurr, everything is going down the pit.
Without Blurr, all the government sees are dry reports and spreadsheets. Without him, all the high command has is numbers and a sense of impunity. Swerve is sickened by how easily people tend to forget that numbers represent other people.
Most pilots are able to draw a parallel between deteriorating working conditions and Blurr's sudden fondness for staying home instead of working. But they think the rich jerk got scared and ran away. Considering the way Blurr has always behaved at work - Swerve can't even judge them too much for it. They assume Shockwave getting more freedom is the cause of Blurr's absence, not the result.
Blurr's influence only becomes noticeable when it slowly starts to fade away. It's like switching from expensive tea to a cheaper one. The awful flavor only becomes noticeable in contrast.
Blurr doesn't lead the development of new technologies or go out to fight in the field. He doesn't make plans and reports, he doesn't participate in drills, he doesn't cover anyone's back in battle.
But he's the one who puts his hand on the government's shoulders when they're about to sign the next piece of paper. He's the one they have to look in the eye before they have a pen in their hands and a document authorizing Shockwave to stick more needles in people's brains.
It makes a difference. Small one. But still.
It turns a disembodied imaginary âcombat unitsâ into a tangible person.
From âdo you want to accelerate the combat training of new soldiersâ to âare you willing to tell the living, breathing guy standing in front of you that shoving poison under his skin is an idea you approve of.â
More importantly (And Swerve actually admires Swindle for this) Will you be able to explain anything to your families later on, when this same guy is on TV all over the country saying that's what you did to him?
There have been two fronts here all this time, Swerve realizes.
While the pilots were protecting people from monsters wearing teeth and armor, Blurr was protecting the pilots themselves from monsters wearing ties and lab coats.
After another conference, Shockwave stops Blurr in the hallway.
âGood show.â
Blurr laughs. Soundly and proudly.
âThanks darling~ Sorry I interrupted you. Your speech sounded like something important, but I don't really know much about nerd stuff.â
Swerve, hiding on the ceiling again, snorts.
Shockwave doesn't move. Doesn't give any indication at all if he's offended or upset or whatever.
âIt must have been hard getting here with your injuries.â
Blurr shrugs and lazily turns his head around distracted.
âIt's just a few bruises here and there. Not the end of the world.â
Shockwave nods slowly. His voice and posture and all, Swerve thinks, looking very uncomfortable.
âOf course it isn't. But hardly good for your career.â
Blurr freezes.
No, Swerve thinks. Shit. No, don't listen to him, don't listen to him, don't listen to him, don't
âYour brilliant achievements have always been a source of admiration to meâ continues Shockwave âit would be a pity to lose them.â
Blurr makes an indifferent face and tucks his hands into his pockets.
âLike I said. Not the end of the world.â
Swerve imagines choking Shockwave. Dropping a lamp on his head. Maybe jumping on top of him himself. Shut up, he thinks. Shut up, shut up, stop fucking talking.
Shockwave with a nice, slow gesture pulls out a notebook from somewhere and flips a couple pages.
âMultiple burns, cracked ribs, poisoning from carbon monoxide and combustion products of toxic chemicals...â
Blurr visibly shivers and looks away.
â...loss of vision on one side...â Shockwave continues reading, âand partial hearing loss. Finally, the impact of neural link malfunctions. And this, if I'm not mistaken, is on top of the already existing memory problems?â
Shockwave takes a step closer. Not fast enough to make it look threatening, but enough to hover.
âIt may not be the end of the world, but it is the end of you.â
He writes a set of numbers on the same page, tears it off, and hands it to Blurr.
âYou are broken. I can fix you.â
Blurr frowns, but takes the piece of paper.
âThat fixing would involve giving you consent to mess around with my head, wouldn't it? It's brave of you to think I'd go for that.â
Shockwave tucks the notepad into his pocket.
âI can assure you, neither I nor anyone else is interested in your brain. I just want to give you back what you're truly valued for.â
Blurr flinches.
âI don't need your help.â
â If you say so,â Shockwave agrees easily. Nods, slowly and smoothly. Then starts to walk away âBut you do need your fame.â
...
âBy the way, you might want to wipe the blood off.â
Blurr waits until Shockwave's back disappears around the corner, then quickly pulls a tissue from his pocket and brings it up to his nose.
____________________________
Swerve wakes up looking up at the ceiling of his room. The high, metal ceiling, of a metal room on a metal spaceship.
Holy shit...
Jazz pokes him gently on the forearm
âAre you alive? You've been gone for like quite a while...Did it work?â
âHey Jazzâ frowns Swerve âwhat do you know about Blurr?â
Jazz laughs
âWhat are you fanboying over him again? Still??? Dude's smug and arrogant. Good boss though. I was hired to perform at his parties before I became a pilot.â
Swerve sits up and rubs the back of his head.
âAh...â
âSo it worked?â
âWha...ah! Yes! Yes, it worked! I managed to get the number and codes from the space bridge the Quints used on you. We just need to find another space bridge and we'll have a pretty much direct route to Earth...well. Or rather, to the Quint ship that's located near Earth. You get the idea.â
Jazz rubs his hands together happily.
âI'll take it.â
Swerve jumps to the floor and heads to grab an energon cube. Man, these holoform exercises are burning energy like crazy.
He stares at his metal hands like an idiot for a couple minutes. Just...Contemplates how non-human they are.
He has eight fingers again instead of the human ten. Huh.
Prowl downloads the information he's gotten and immediately runs off to plan a route to the nearest working space bridge and for a while Swerve is just.
Left to himself.
He tries not to think about Blurr. What would he even say to him? Hey, look, I'm sorry I accidentally set you up, see, I'm actually an alien who was sleepwalking and thought you were fictional, surely this won't affect our non-existent strictly professional working relationship? Nah, screw that. If he's going to sound crazy, he needs to at least come up with a good presentation for his insanity.
....
Is it weird to think humans are beautiful if you're not human? If you're kind of human, but only in your soul and only half human?
He looks at Jazz and Prowl.
âYou two get along really well.â
Jazz chuckles, sitting on Prowl's shoulder.
âRight now, yes. But we got on each other's nerves quite a bit when we first met.â
Swerve looks up at Jazz's chattering legs from his height and thinks. This is working somehow.
On the other hand, Jazz is the exception rather than the rule. He's friendly with everyone, he's easy to get along with, he's the soul of any company and most importantly, he was a little too much into robots before he discovered they could be alive. If anyone could find common ground with the Cybertronians, it would definitely be Jazz.
_____________________
âAre you a ghost?â
Swerve shrieks in fear and gets covered in static. He hadn't planned on talking. He hadn't planned on being noticed at all. Blurr was supposed to be asleep! And Swerve just wanted to close the curtains and leave, because there's some noisy party going on outside and bright illuminations are very bad for a patient already suffering from neural connection withdrawal.
He freezes in place like that dude from Jurassic Park. Like if he's still enough, he won't be noticed. Oh, or was that from another movie?
âI'm just uhâ he awkwardly reaches up and closes the curtains âLights. Bad for...you...now.â
Blurr chuckles. It sounds suspiciously joyful. His whole posture and facial expression. He looks very relaxed for someone who had a ghost materialize into the room out of thin air.
Swerve traces the line of the IV with his gaze. Oops, that looks like painkillers.
âYes I am. Uh. A ghost watching the curtains. And now the curtains are fine, so I guess I'd better go?â
Blurr squints amusedly.
âYou can walk through walls?â
âUh, I can teleport into the next room?â
He backs up his words by making himself disappear and reappear in another corner of the room.
âCool!â says Blurr cheerfully.
Swerve is involuntarily infected by his mood and makes a couple dramatic bows as if he were some kind of magician.
â Show me more?â
âHehehe okay ehâ Swerve spreads his arms like he's presenting something and then makes himself the size of a soda bottle and teleports to the edge of Blurr's bed âTa daaaa~â
âWooooo look at you, you're like an action figure~â
Blurr immediately makes an attempt to touch him, but fails to reach and drops his hand back on the blanket.
Swerve chuckles and steps closer. It's funny to see the usually incredibly agile Blurr struggling with something so simple and ridiculous.
âThey really drugged you huh?â
âIt's not the drugsâ snorts Blurr â...it's my eye.â
He raises his hand once more and hesitantly pulls it towards Swerve until it bumps into his hair
â... depths PerâŠpercen.. ah, shit. I can't tell how far away things are.â
Swerve just. Lets Blurr fidget at himself, while starting to feel really bad at the same time.
"If you can't tell how far things are, how are you going to drive?
Race???â
He must have a plan right? Something? Letâs-prove-Shockwave-wrong tactic???
Blurr drops his hands back on the blanket
âI won't.â
He freezes when the all too close fireworks rumble outside the window. Then points to his head.
âWith this. I can't drive, I can barely walk at all, and I look like horror movie material. Pathetic heeh.â
Swerve sits down quietly cross-legged on the blanket.
âWell...at least you're alive....â
Blurr shakes his head.
âIf I had died, it would have been epic. You know? Dharm...dramatic! It would be big news and everyone would be talking about what a hero I was or...or something...â
â...â
âSwindle would be so angry, but he'd figure out a way to make money out of it. He'd make a commercial about how people should be heroes. I'd be remn..remembered for being cool and brave and stuff.â
Fireworks can be heard from the street again. Swerve notices that there is a thin slit between the closed curtains through which a slim, flickering strip of multicolored light streams into the room.
Blurr frowns and leans back against the pillow, looking up at the ceiling.
âI've turned into a boring wreck. My records will be beaten, my career forgotten , and all the guys from work will remember me as a brat. In a--in a--in a way, it's worse than death. Shockwave's right.â
Swerve isn't sure what exactly would be an acceptable gesture of comfort, so he kind of just. Places his hand on the blanket covering Blurr's lap.
âHey, don't say that. I think what you're doing is great.â
âLiarâ smiles Blurr crookedly âYou hated me. I saw your posters collection.â
Oh shit. The ones he ripped off the walls and destroyed in a fit of fan frustration? He didn't even hide them, just shoved them in the back corner. Aw, man...
Swerve folds his arms awkwardly across his chest.
âI can be mad at you and think you're cool at the same time. I'm a multitasker.â
âYou're a very specific kind of ghost.â says Blurr. Then, apparently inspired by the painkillers, decides to drop the conversational equivalent of an atomic bomb on Swerve's head âYou died because of me?â
Swerve stiffens.
âI...Wwhat?â
âYou know.â he makes a gesture with his hand that's ..unclear what it's supposed to mean. âYou were working there with everyone else, and then there was that fire and I was sure I saw you down there under the rubble.â
He's silent for a couple seconds before he hesitantly continues
âAnd then no one could find you so most assumed you either burned or ran away. And now you're here with all your weird ghost stuff, so you must be dead.â
Swerve has.No idea what to think about it. And what to say? He's been so busy blaming himself for Blurr getting hurt that it hasn't occurred to him to think about what it looks like from Blurr's own perspective.
âActuallyâ says Swerve âI'm an alien.â
âHehâ giggles Blurr âsorry, my headâs all cloudy, I thought you said you were an alien.â
Swerve wants to run around and bang his head against the wall.
Instead, he gets up from the hospital bed. Carefully.
âYou're high. I'm not going to explain things to you while you're high, you won't understand or remember them. Go back to sleep. It's the middle of the night.â
âYou'll tell me later?â
Swerve hums quietly and pulls the curtains all the way closed.
âIf future, sober Blurr would want my company.â
---------------
Jazz looks at him. Very intensely.
âAre you going to tell me who this mystery person you keep coming back to Earth for?â
Swerve snorts.
âWhat makes you think it's anyone in particular?â
âYou're right, you're right~â raises his hands in surrender Jazz âSo are you going to tell your friend the whole thing?â
Swerve crosses his ..metal arms over his metal chest.
âIs it that big of a deal? He thinks I'm a ghost or something.â
Being a ghost...somehow better, he thinks. If you're a ghost, it kind of automatically implies you're human. Or was a human.
âSooner or later, he'll put the facts together~â says Jazz in a chant.
Swerve laughs.
âThat's unlikely. He's got a pretty bad memory.â
_______________
His plans to stay out of anyone's sight combust with a dramatic pop the next time he projects himself to Earth. He doesn't plan to interfere, he doesn't even plan to linger. He just wants to see what's going on.
He actually just quietly sneaks into the hospital to make sure nothing's happened to Blurr since last time, but when he finally finds him then...oh shit, is that Pharma in the same room with him??? This can't be good.
They don't speak, but Pharma has clearly locked his eyes on Blurr and starts making his way towards him with the relentlessness of a industrial metal press.
Swerve does some rough math in his head. If he briefly gives his holoform back its detail and voice, will that be enough to fry his processor? He's not sure.
Pharma gives a believable impression of a shark getting close. The staff, as if sensing something untoward is about to happen, leaves the room in a hurry.
Blurr looks indifferent, but Swerve's attention is drawn to the way he squints tensely. Man, the lamps are too bright in here.
Pharma smiles sweetly and reaches out for a handshake
âMind some company?â
Swerve's mental processes fly out the window. Oh no no. Not Pharma. Not in his fucking fanfic. He quickly changes his work clothes into a slightly more business-like looking shirt. Thinks for just a moment and adds a cap to his head to blend in more strongly with the attendants and hide his face to an extent. And then projects himself around the nearest unoccupied corner and runs out of behind it looking as anxious as he feels.
âBlurr!!! Sir, there you are!!! I've been looking everywhere for you!â
Pharma wants to say something, but Swerve doesn't even let him start. He stands in front of Blurr separating him and Farma expressively waves his hands trying to keep his head down.
âThe guys you were talking about didn't bring the new hydraulics! It's a disaster, we'll have to use the one on the old models!â
Blurr, to his surprise, backs up his act almost instantly
âReally? But I thought there was nothing to take from the old models?â
âThat's exactly the point! I got the paperwork this morning and...oh those assholes are going to screw it up if you don't step in as soon as possible!â
Pharma tilts his head
âCan it wait? We were actually talking here!â
Oh no, thinks Swerve I'll show you who's talking.
âSir, no offense but this is a matter of extreme urgency. Are you implying that the safety of your patients is not important?â
âWhat do you mea...â
âOld faulty hydraulics, that's what you want?â raises an eyebrow in horror Blurr.
âNo I'm just...â
âI had a better opinion of you, to be honest.â
âI...â opens his mouth Pharma â...WHAT...?â
Swerve shakes his head.
âAnd I thought his profession was to help people, can you imagine?â
âWh..â
Blurr rolls his eye.
âAny idiot can get an important position these days.â
âWait..â
âTell me about it. Especially doctors.â
Pharma looks like he's about to start pulling the hair out of his head.
âCan at least one of you shut up??â
Swerve adjusts his cap in a businesslike manner
âSir, I understand you're a bit detached from reality spending so much time in your department, but you need to take better care of your reputation.â
He raises his eyebrows knowingly
âWouldn't want the rumors about you to turn out to be true. You know what I mean?â
Pharma doesn't even answer anymore. Pharma just looks like a discarded fish.
ââŠ..Wha....there's rumors?â
âOf courseâ shrugs Swerve âAsk Norman, he usually knows everything about everyone. And about your interesting tricks with safety, too.â
He leans in conspiratorially, effectively pulling all of Farma's attention to himself
âSo if I were you, I'd stay out of any more things you don't understand.â
Pharma wants to say something. Swerve can tell by the look in his eyes. Pharma tries to come up with a witty and context-appropriate response, but this whole conversation has no more context than a typical episode of Teletubbies.
âWhere does this Norman guy work?â finally finds the ground beneath his feet Pharma
Swerve shrugs.
âBlock C, if he hasn't been transferred yet. He's already been fined several times for spreading harmful information you know? The guy can't keep a secret.â
Pharma throws his hands up angrily and storms away. Probably looking for context. Or revenge.
A quiet cough sounds behind Swerve's back.
âSo. Should I be worried about Norman's health?â
Swerve feels the hair on the back of his neck shiver and slowly turns to face Blurr while still looking somewhere on the floor.
âUh...only if you're concerned about the fate of fictional characters. I made up Norman's wife, she'll be upset if he gets fired for gossiping.â
Blurr chuckles. Then goes silent. Then, after a couple seconds, starts laughing again. That's a good look for him, Swerve thinks. It's not like Blurr's usual velvet-smooth laugh that he uses at social events. It's more like a quick, jerky giggle, and in Swerve's subjective opinion, it's pretty damn cute. He can't help but grin.
Blurr snorts one last time, cutting off the laughter.
Then he reaches out his hand to him.
Swerve reaches back, expecting a handshake, but Blurr ignores his hand and instead goes for his cap and lifts it by the brim.
Swerve, not expecting this, freezes with his hand outstretched.
Blurr freezes as well, still holding the cap in his hand and looking...like he's rethinking his life. A little.
Ugh, and how to explain it all to him....
âUh...you...uh...probably don't remember me. I...it's...â
Blurr shifts his gaze from Swerve to the cap in his hand. Then back to Swerve.
âYou're real???â
Swerve awkwardly waves his hands in front of him
âAh not.., not really. Do you know why Pharma was looking for you in the first place? He doesn't work with patients anymore, he's been reassigned to the research department, right?â
Blurr shrugs.
âLast time I saw him, he said I might have implant rejection in the third ..uh..what? stage? or something? I think he's trying to get me in for a checkup.â
Swerve twitches.
âThird??? How are you still standing???â
He then quickly reaches up with both hands to Blurr's head and tilts it so he can see his face better. Using one thumb, he pulls his lower eyelid slightly and mentally catalogs. Temperature normal, pupil normal, eyes are steady, no darkening or trace of blood on the eyelid. Implants? He puts both palms up and gently feels the places behind Blurr's ears. No signs of rejection or malfunction.
âNo no noâ sighs Swerve âYou're fine, it's only stage two. I mean, second sucks too, migraines and all, but you just need to rest and no bright lights and...â he finally notices his hands are still on Blurr's head and pulls them back as fast as if he's been burned âI MEAN I'm uh...sorry, I didn't mean to, I...â
Blurr laughs quietly.
âI'm glad you're back.â
_____________________
He wakes up in his quarters and can feel his face burning.
When he goes out to get the energon, Jazz throws him a look.
âIs something wrong? You're all kinda...shaky.â
âHhhhhhuuuuuuuuuuuuâ imitates signs of life Swerve âSay, doesn't it bother you that Prowl isn't human?â
Jazz smiles
â Oh, I went crazy when I found out. But we figured it out.â
âLike...on a scale from âbad grade in schoolâ to âan asteroid is coming to Earthâ how crazy was it?â
âWorried about what your human friends will think?â
Swerve swings back and forth on his heels
âPfffffffffffffffffffffffffffffff. Whatnooooo, no of course not. I'd be worried if I planned on telling them at all.â
Jazz frowns
âNo offense, but keeping secrets isn't your strong suit.â
âHahaâ Swerve waves his servo â Watch me.â
#maccadam#tf mecha universe#blurr#Swerve#mecha writing#mecha kef writing#mecha bs writing#if you saw any mistakes - no you didnât#itâs six am I need to go to bed but I wanted to post it before my brain shuts down completely#mecha pilot jazz au#jazzprowl#jazzprowl happens on the background lol#Swindle#two nano seconds of Vortex#Shockwave#Pharma
2K notes
·
View notes
Text
you plus me | heeseung
SUMMARY: it's been six years since heeseung stopped being your friend and the thought of him tagging along an annual camping tradition makes you feel like the world is crashing around you. one misunderstanding and one trip later makes heeseung re-evaluate all he knows, and it makes you believe there might be life after love.
NOTES: first full length fic!!!!!!! enjoy :) x
PAIRING: heeseung x fem!reader (featuring enhypen)
WORD COUNT: 34.1K
WARNINGS: fluff, angst, mentions of poor relationships with parental figures, mentions of infidelity, bad friendships, smut in the form of: fingering, oral (f. receiving), creampie.
***
âPlease donât make me go.â
âY/N, you already said yes. Weâre only gonna be gone for a week.â
âI donât think this is a good idea, Jungwon. You just said that Heeseung is gonna be there.âÂ
Your best friend sighs and sits down on your bed, inspecting the duffle bag you have thatâs half-packed. Your clothes are haphazardly strewn all over your bedding while you plead with him to no avail. Youâre so desperate that you consider getting on your knees to beg.
âIâm sorry for telling you now, but he was able to get people to cover his shift last minute and paid for a spot on the kayaking rental.âÂ
âIf heâs going, Iâd rather save us all the trouble and stay at home.â Jungwon watches you cross your arms over your chest. âEvery time weâre in the same room, itâs just a matter of time before things become awkward.âÂ
âWeâll be outside in the suuuun,â Jungwon says, tilting his head to the side and giving you those amused eyes that he always gives you when heâs trying to convince you to do something with him. You scoff and look away. It almost works.Â
âI bet that itâll be worse since we have a few things planned with the guys already.â
âSo what? You two donât get along. Big deal. Weâve already made reservations to secure a spot on the campsite and set a deposit for kayak rentals.â
âWon, I think you and I view Heeseung very differently. He doesnât just not like me. He hates me.âÂ
âHate is a wrong word.âÂ
You huff. âI donât think you grasp just how weird it is every time weâre together. You could cut the tension with a knife.â
âSeriously, Y/N. Itâs one week. Iâm sure you can survive that. Youâve never missed a camping trip and itâs the first time all of our friends are coming.â Jungwon deadpans and throws a shirt towards your chest, which you hastily grab after being startled by his sudden movement. You know better than to argue with him when he gets like this. âJust help me pack your clothes, dude. Jayâs gonna be here to pick us up tomorrow morning, and you donât want to be under-packed.âÂ
You relent and grumble. âAre you still staying over?â
He nods. âMy apartmentâs in the opposite of where weâre going, and I didnât want to make him drive an extra twenty minutes since he needs to pick Riki up. Just need to drop Maeumi off at my momâs before coming back here. â Your eyes fall for a flat second before you squash that feeling down.
âI didnât invite you over, you know.âÂ
âNo, but donât pretend like youâre not excited,â Jungwon says with a laugh as he pulls your clothes out of the bag and starts to readjust the clothing youâve folded poorly. Seeing your best friend smile tugs a bit at your heartstrings and you canât say that you arenât happy to have him with you. âWe should get you packed now so you donât stress out later.âÂ
Begrudgingly, you allow Jungwon to sort out your clothes for you and pull last minute items youâve yet to pack. It annoys you watching him be so calm when youâre simmering with worry. But you know heâs rightâyouâve invested some money into this getaway, and itâll be the last big outing before you move away from Korea for a year-long job opportunity in Okayama before pursuing your Masterâs degree. Jungwon knows you a little too well, and sometimes it irks you.Â
The end-of-summer camping trip is always one for the books. For as long as you can remember, the two of you have been going camping just before everyone goes back to school to celebrate the beginning of a new academic year with your families. But this time, the trip wasnât just about continuing an annual tradition. It was also to commemorate a new chapter in your life.Â
Youâre a year older than Jungwon. Heâs known you since you were obsessed with learning how to double dutch, and youâve known him since he first learnt how to ride a bike. The two of you started out as neighbors when you moved into the house next to his, and his family had adopted your own like old friends, eventually inviting you and your parents into their annual camping tradition. Even when dynamics changed and people left, the tradition was the only thing that remained a constant for you.
This is the first summer that your loved ones announced they wouldnât be coming along. They all thought it was time for you to embark on new traditions with new people, and nobody seemed to mind the change that much except for you. Jungwon had been ecstatic about it since he invited his friend, Jake, to the camping trip last year. Youâd been wary at first since Jake is friends with Heeseung, but he never brought up your confusing arch-nemesis and chose to have a great trip before you all started university again. Â
Sure, you had a lot of fun. You might even consider last yearâs trip as one for the books. But your mom pulling out of the camping trip and everyone around you agreeing that it was for the best made you feel like your world was crumbling around you.
When you graduated university three months ago (Jungwon swears he didnât cry, but you know better than to believe him), the weight of leaving your home started to sink in. In the blink of an eye, Jungwon wouldnât be a twenty minute drive, and hanging out with all of your friends wouldnât be as easy as it once was. Youâd be in Japan all alone.
This past summer has been a whirlwind as you tried to do everything under the sun, savoring each moment until you wouldnât be able to anymore. Jungwonâs been a good sport about it, never once complaining when you drag him to your latest adventure. He deals with your sudden shift in mood from happy to sad, letting you cry on his shoulder and braving the cliche words you say when telling him youâll miss him a lot.Â
Unlike past seasons, this is the first summer you havenât seen Heeseung very often. Lee Heeseung, who usually keeps his head down and minds his business, always seems to have a bone to pick whenever his eyes settle on you. It confuses you to no end, and he keeps his quips to a minimum when your mutual friends are around, but it doesnât stop you from wondering what you mustâve done to make him act like that towards you. Itâs a shame because that small childhood crush you always had on him was squashed the first time he ignored your presence.Â
None of your friends comment on it much. Theyâre used to the dynamic between the both of you because it's been years of this. Elementary school saw the two of you become friends for the first time and middle school brought more friends into the group. It was in high school that things changed and Heeseung started ignoring you out of nowhere until one Thursday afternoon when heâd told you to leave him alone after pestering him about his change in behavior.Â
The odd tension followed you into university and continued to seep into your life. You donât think youâve ever been in a room with Heeseung where heâs been anything but nonchalant towards you, often acting like you arenât there to begin with. You do your best to put up with it and plaster a smile on your face, but six years have gone by, and you donât think you can handle a seventh. All of your friends seemed to have moved past it. You donât know why you canât.
âDonât think about Heeseung,â Jungwon says with a sigh. âIn fact, donât think at all. Let me handle everything and enjoy this trip before you move to Okayama, okay?â
âOkay, fine. But I want to see Maeumi.â
Jungwon snorts. âSheâs gonna be real pissed when she doesnât see you for a year, you know.â
âDonât remind me.â
Jungwon knows you like the back of your hand and has seen what you bring on these trips enough to know what you like to have in your duffle. He packs things you neglected to pull out because your mind has been elsewhere. As much as he wants to flick your head and tell you to quit overthinking so you can help him, he did tell you to let him handle everything.Â
Your best friend makes you triple check that the two of you didnât miss anything before heading back to his apartment to fetch Maeumi. She jumps into your arms when you squat to pick her up and wonât allow Jungwon to pet her white fur body while sheâs nestled against you. This fondness and the familiar jab of Jungwonâs elbow to your ribcage make your heart ache despite the sweet moment. Youâre really going to miss home.Â
Ever the concerned mothers your mom and Jungwonâs are, they send you with a tray full of sweets for the road. They make you tell them exactly when youâll be picked up and by who (âJongseong, Eomma,â Jungwon says for the umpteenth time) and when you plan to come back. His dad gives you a spare bucket hat for when youâre on the water and an old sweater from his college days when Jungwon complains about how you never pack enough layers. The gesture feels warm since you consider his father to be somewhat of your own.
Leaving them to go back to your house feels a bit bittersweet. A lot of your belongings sit in storage boxes in the garage from when you moved out of your campus apartment upon graduating. Jungwon decided to get an apartment for himself with the money he saved from his part-time job as a busboy at a local chain restaurant. Staying over with you makes it seem silly when you remember he used to live next door.Â
Itâs nine in the evening when the two of you get ready for bed. Jungwon puts your bags by the front door so neither of you would forget while you finish brushing your teeth. He grabs extra blankets from the linen closet and settles onto your L-shaped couch, pulling the fabric just underneath his chin. Your heart feels like itâs sinking in on itself when you think about how this might be the last time youâre able to be so casual around him.Â
âStop overthinking,â he says in the quiet of the night, as if he can hear the thoughts in your head. The living room lights are off and the moonlight is whatâs responsible for illuminating the space.Â
You refrain from throwing your pillow at him. âIâm not overthinking. Youâre overthinking.âÂ
Jungwon snorts. âWe both know thatâs not true. I know youâre scared about Okayama and I know thatâs why youâve been on edge about Heeseung. Youâre usually never this loud about it.â Like always, your best friend is right.Â
âItâs hard not to.â Your meek voice makes Jungwonâs heart lurch. âEverythingâs changed so fast. I feel like I didnât get enough time to properly say goodbye to everyone.â
âYouâll be in Japan, not America. Itâs not like weâll never see you.âÂ
âYeah, but I wonât be able to annoy you for boba and you wonât be coming over to have dinner with my mom and me." Jungwon frowns. Too caught up in making sure you were happy this summer, he hadnât given it that much thought. âI know I wonât be far, but Iâm scared that things will change too much.âÂ
For the first time today, Jungwon doesnât know what to say to make you feel better. âIâll miss you a lot.âÂ
âI know that, dummy. I guessâŠI feel like Iâve been dealing with a lifetime of shittiness and the universe wanted to throw another curveball at me.â Jungwonâs heart softens at your confession. Heâs used to your quick jabs and sarcastic humor. Knowing youâve more afraid than excited makes him upset.Â
âThe universe sucks,â he says, happy that it pulled a laugh out of you. âIâll always be a phone call away and youâll never have to worry about me ignoring you because we both know Iâm gonna blow up your texts anyway.âÂ
âI can always count on you to annoy the hell out of me.â You canât see his face, but no you already assume Jungwonâs sporting a shit-eating grin. Even if you both know the main reason why youâre afraid of living in Okayama, neither of you say it. Youâre grateful that Jungwon doesnât bring it up. âStill, though. You know how I am with change. Iâm really scared that Iâm going to hate it there and not have you to keep me company.â
âLife is crazy and unpredictable but that doesnât mean youâre going to be miserable. I mean, you did a pretty good job of making sure both of us had happy childhoods even though I know you were hurting when we were younger.âÂ
âItâs really hard not to have expectations or think badly about the future when I feel like I took everything for granted.âÂ
âI know, Bug,â Jungwon says, using a nickname from your childhood he reserves for when he thinks you need an extra bit of comfort. âBut youâre the best person I know. You didnât do anything wrong. Life justâŠgets in the way.âÂ
âYeah, I know.â
Jungwon is quiet for a moment. âJust please promise me youâll try to have fun, okay?â
âI know Iâll have fun, Wonnie. Iâm scared that Iâll have too much fun and be a sobbing wreck when we get back.âÂ
The two of you share a laugh. âAlright, fair. Promise me you wonât let Heeseung get under your skin.â
You groan. âIf he doesnât like me, thatâs fine. I donât need everyone to like me. But why go out of his way to act like Iâm scum of the Earth?â
âJust ignore him, okay?â Jungwon pleads. âI know itâs uncomfortable but he paid for a last minute spot. Iâll tell him to be mature about it too.âÂ
And, well, part of you believes Heeseung will listen to Jungwon. Despite being on the younger side in your shared friend group, everyone seemed to listen to your best friend most of the time. Jungwon has an authoritative aspect to himself when heâs refrained from being the silly, happy-go-lucky guy you all know him to be.Â
Itâs quiet for a brief moment with the wind gently tapping on the windows behind you. âI donât know why he doesnât like me.âÂ
Truthfully, neither does Jungwon. âIâm sorry heâs putting you in a tough spot.âÂ
âWon, sometimes I really wonder if he hates my guts. He doesnât talk to me and he never replies to my messages in the group chat. Itâs like I donât exist to him.â
âI think that might be a little extreme.âÂ
âItâs not and you know it.âÂ
Jungwon hums. âWell, at least youâll get away from him when you move to Okayama.â Just like that, all of your worries come flooding right back.
âYeah,â you say meekly. âIâll have Okayama.â
You donât see him, but you know Jungwonâs smiling since you agreed with him for the first time tonight. âThatâs more like it. You have your whole future ahead of yourself, dude. Heeseung is just a blimp. In three weeks, he wonât matter because youâll be having fun in Japan. Just think about that.âÂ
You try not to think about the fears and hesitations you have about starting anew. This time, you wouldnât be going back to university after the camping trip. Youâll have a week and a half back home before youâre boarding your flight and saying goodbye to the place youâve called home for the past two decades. Thinking about the future keeps you up until you hear Jungwonâs snores from the other side of the couch.Â
Unsure of when your mom will be coming home, you snuggle further into the cushions and curl yourself into a ball before falling asleep.Â
***
The next morning, Jungwon wakes up just before you do and you see him and your mom talking before they see you sit up. Barely noticing their hushed tones, you find yourself yawning more than normal and force the blankets off of your body. Your mom fixes you a cup of tea while Jungwon finishes packing, leaving you to freshen up and do the same.Â
âYou know, this trip will be good for you. I can feel it,â your mom says when you sip on your tea. Itâs hot and nearly burns your tongue, but you donât mind. Somehow, that sharp pain makes you feel even more alert than the strong brew.Â
âYou say that every year.âÂ
âYeah, but this time I wonât be with you.âÂ
She laughs when she hears you huff. âBaby, I know you love it when I come on these trips but weâll always have other ones. Weâll have next year too.âÂ
âI just donât get why you and Jungwonâs parents donât want to come on this one.âÂ
âLike we said all those months agoâitâs time for you guys to break tradition and spend some time with your friends before you move to Okayama. Next year, we can rent out the whole campsite if it means we can accommodate us, the Yangs, and your friends.âÂ
Frustration bubbles within you but youâre quick to shut that feeling. âI guess. It wonât be the same.â
âJakeâs going this year, right? You guys had a lot of fun last summer.âÂ
Well, she isnât wrong. âSure, yeah. I had fun with him.â Motherly instincts kick in and she bumps your hip with hers.Â
âI know youâre scared about moving and seeing Heeseung. But youâre much braver than you give yourself credit for. Sometimes people are meant to be lessons and maybe Heeseung is the biggest one of all.â
You throw a fake-disgusted look at her. âDid Jungwon put you up to this?â She laughs and shakes her head, bringing you into her arms. Her lips on the crown of your head feel warm and you donât shy away from her embrace.Â
âNo, but I carried you in my stomach and brought you to term. I like to think I know you pretty well.âÂ
You chuckle. âYeah, I guess you do. Iâll try not to let Heeseung bother me too much.âÂ
âJungwonâs pretty worried, even if he wonât say it. I told him to relax a little. This trip isnât supposed to stress anyone out. Itâs supposed to be a nice getaway before you go back to your normal life.âÂ
âI feel guilty for making Jungwon worry about me. I know heâs still friends with Heeseung, somewhat, even though nobody can figure out why he doesnât like me so much.âÂ
âThat old saying about boys being mean to their crushes is bullshit.âÂ
You pull away and gasp when you hear her swear. âEomma!â Â
âI used to swear like a sailor before I became a mom, you know.â Her eyes light up when she watches you giggle and from the corner of her eye, she can see Jungwon walking back into the living room.Â
âJayâs almost here,â he says, shoving his phone into his back pocket.Â
âDoes he want a cup of tea?âÂ
Jungwon shakes his head. âI think itâs better if we head out as soon as possible. We still have to pick up Riki and then we have a four hour drive to the campsite.âÂ
She looks at the two of you like she has stars in her eyes. Wordlessly, your mom pulls Jungwon underneath her other arm and kisses his forehead before kissing yours. âWhen did you two become so grown up, huh? It feels like just yesterday that Y/N stopped crying whenever she got papercuts.âÂ
Jungwon snickers. âShe still does.â
âHey!â
âAnd it feels like just yesterday that Jungwon stopped needing to sleep with a nightlight.â Jungwonâs cheeks turn pink and you snicker at him.Â
âTime flew by fast,â says Jungwon. She lets the two of you go and the doorbell rings. âThat must be Jay.âÂ
Indeed, Jay is standing behind the door and bows at your mom before she offers to help you both carry things to his car. They make small talk while the two of you put them into the trunk (he loves to cook while she loves to bake. Likewise, they enjoy talking about this with each other). Jayâs Jeep is far too expensive for you to wrap your head around, but you donât complain when he offers to drive you in it. A yellow rubber duck sits on his dashboard and it never fails to bring a smile to your face whenever you see it. You wave goodbye to your mom and stick your body halfway out the window until youâre restricted by the seat belt.
âCan we get coffee on the way?â you ask, yawning into your palm. Itâs eight oâclock and everyoneâs agreed to arrive around noon for lunch and to relax before sleeping.Â
âYeah, good idea. Letâs pick up Riki and then stop somewhere.âÂ
Jay plugs his phone into the aux cord at a red light and turns on some music. You like driving with him because you always discover new songs you obsess over for the next few days. It brings a pang in your heart when you think about how this will have to stop when you move to Japan. The two of you have created many playlist blends and heâs curated a few for you. While youâre not as musically inclined like your friends may be, Jay is the only person whoâs willing to break things down for you in depth so that you can understand them too. Itâs nice, especially when he talks about his own musical talents. You can see why he loves music so much and you donât mind if he sends you a million songs to listen to. He turns onto the freeway and you know youâre about to see Riki soon.
Heâs about to be a first-year in the university you graduated from. He moved to Korea from Japan a few weeks prior to get a lay of the land and become more comfortable in his surroundings. Originally planning on enjoying your summer until he reached out to you, your mother chided your decision and told you to help Riki move into his new dormitory.Â
It was the least you could do for your half-brother.Â
Begrudgingly, you spent a lot of time making sure Riki felt comfortable and settled in when you couldâve been soaking up the sun. Maybe thatâs why you were so adamant about hanging out with Jungwon whenever you could. Being around Riki made you feel drained because his mere presence was enough to remind you of why you started losing faith in people.Â
The dorms arenât too far from your house. The drive there is silent, save for the music coming from Jayâs stereo. It gives you plenty of time to think about what the next week or so might look like. Avoiding Heeseung is out of the question since there will be eight of you participating in the same activities together. Youâre not worried about having to watch over Riki too much either. Before moving to Korea, he met Jungwon the first summer he spent a few weeks vacationing here and they instantly became friends. He introduced Riki to the people youâd be camping with too. Without fail, the seven of them were always up to no good when he was in town.Â
Spending three weeks with him in your neighborhood felt like someone was trying to set your life ablaze. He was so young back then, barely speaking Korean until you had to translate conversations into Japanese for him. You tried to mask disdain for having to help him, but even then, Riki understood why you were hesitant to have him in your life. If he were in your position, heâd probably feel the same way about you.Â
He didnât come to Korea very often but started to when he had school recess for the holidays and summer breaks. Since he expressed an interest in attending university in Korea, it felt like the right decision to send Riki whenever school wasnât in session. Heâd stay with his paternal grandparents and saw you every so often when you were both invited to the same place. Neither of you made a real effort to keep up with each other on social media or over the phone. At this time, Riki followed you on Instagram and you hadnât bothered to follow him back. In all honesty, you didnât see the point.Â
You held a lot of resentment over Riki for things you know you canât blame him for. But with new life changes that came your way, Riki seemed like the perfect scapegoat. He feels it sometimes, the way you pull him in just to push him away when the moment gets too familiar. He shoves down his feelings, choosing to treasure when you laugh with him.Â
The two of you are doing somewhat better nowadays. You followed him back on Instagram the night after you dropped him off at the airport at the behest of your grandparents. They insisted Riki arrive at the airport four hours early despite the flightâs duration equating to two and a half hours. You suspected they wanted to force you into spending a little bit of alone time with your half-brother and get to know each other.Â
To your surprise, the two of you got along pretty well. Riki was a dweeb trying to mask himself as cool. You bought him ice cream (pretending like you didnât see him smiling so hard that he forced it off of his face) and sat in your car for two hours to talk. He found out you were a genius when it came to mathematics, a subject he did not excel in, and you found out heâs in a hip hop dance crew and wants to study dancing in Korea. Riki showed you a few clips of him dancing and from the corner of your eye, you could see how happy he was to be sharing this moment with you. It made your heart twinge and guilt crept up your spine when you think of all the times youâve blown him off. You said goodbye to him at the gate and he surprised you with the first hug heâs ever given you.Â
Still, itâs a bit awkward when the two of you spend any time together without your friends acting as buffers. It irks you that Riki and Heeseung get along so well because they share similar interests and are often awake at the same time, especially during the midnight hour. Part of you wondered if Heeseung would tell you all about your ârivalryâ and how the two of you didnât get along. If he did, Riki never let you know it because heâs been the same Riki youâve known since you first met him three years ago.Â
You can tell Heeseung is a bit irritated, too, that your half-brother still chooses to be nice to you. In fact, you realize heâs annoyed at everyone about this, especially Jungwon. You donât call him out on it because you know itâll spark a useless argument that makes you and everyone else feel upset. How Heeseung has the energy and stamina to avoid you for hours on end is strange to you.Â
You and Jungwon meet Riki at the front door while Jay gets out of the car to make room for his belongings and the lawn chairs his grandparents dropped off for this specific trip. Thereâs exactly eight of them and they somehow all fit into the rear with all of the other cooking gear heâs packed. You assume the other car has everything needed for pitching tents and fishing.
âHi,â Riki says before you can acknowledge him. He steps forward like heâs about to throw his arms around you but stops himself. âGood morning.âÂ
âMorning, Riki,â you say while grabbing the duffle bag from his shoulder. âLet me put this in the car. You and Wonnie can load the chairs.âÂ
âAye, aye, captain.âÂ
Itâs Rikiâs first time on the camping trip and you find yourself a bit more nervous with him coming. Heâs not someone whoâs been camping before and you wonder if any of the other guys are going to look out for him. Jungwon, for as responsible as he is, tends to turn into a younger version of himself when heâs with your half-brother. You furrow your eyebrows when you put his duffle bag in Jayâs trunk as he rearranges and waits for the two boys to load everything in before settling back into the car.Â
Riki and Jungwon immediately hop in the backseat and youâre quite pleased that you donât have to call shotgun. They talk about things you donât understand while Jay starts the car and resumes manning the aux cord. That strange feeling of nervousness creeps back into your stomach. You turn around and startle Riki when you look at him.Â
âDo you have everything you need?â you ask him.Â
âYes,â Riki says with a nod. âI have my water bottle, my Swiss army knife, and sunblock.âÂ
âBug spray?âÂ
âJungwon says heâs bringing a few bottles.â
âSwimming trunks?â
âCâMon, Y/N. Weâre gonna be camping by a lake. Thatâs the first thing I packed.â
âToothbrush?â
âSecond thing I packed.â
âEnough shirts and socks?â
âOkay,â Jay says, pulling your wrist to get you to look at the road. âRikiâs got everything he needs and if he doesnât, Iâm sure someone else would let him use or borrow it.â
âIâm just making sure heâs got everything so we donât need to stop somewhere,â you mutter, slinking into your seat while Jay sighs. You donât catch it, but Riki sits behind you with a happy smile on his face.Â
âRelax. Weâre trying to make the most before summer ends. You deserve that too.â You know Jayâs right. He smiles when you fix your posture and hands you his phone. âYou know my passcode. Queue up whatever you want.âÂ
You do just that, especially since Jungwon and Riki are engrossed in a conversation about God knows what. You think of interrupting them to ask what they want to listen to but ultimately decide to play a few songs you and Jay could jam out to and some from Jungwonâs playlists. You also try to remember the songs Riki has danced to in his Instagram videos and the musicians he posts on his stories and add them to the queue too.Â
âThanks for letting us come on this trip,â Jay tells you with chatter in the background, not once taking his eyes off of the road. âI know itâs a thing you and Jungwon do with your families.âÂ
âEh, it was bound to happen anyway. Jake was the only one here last summer and I knew it was a matter of time.âÂ
âStill, I know how youâve been feeling lately and it must be overwhelming to have so many people around you right now.â Damn. Jay is almost as receptive as Jungwon is.Â
You donât bother lying to him. âYeah, I think Iâm just scared about starting my life in Okayama. I know a few people but itâs not like here. I thought it was what I wanted to do when I accepted the position but now I canât help but feel like I made a mistake.âÂ
âItâs not a mistake if you believed in it enough to do it all those months ago. I mean, thereâs a reason why youâre moving.âÂ
âI guess.â
âYou donât give yourself enough credit, dude. Youâre like, a fucking wizard when it comes to numbers and even Jake is speechless. You know how he feels about math and physics.âÂ
That makes you laugh. âIt feels kinda nerdy to love math so much but fuck it. It got me a paid yearâs worth of employment before I earn my Masterâs.â
âSee? Not so bad, isnât it?â You suppose itâs not. âJunwon, can you please tell the others that weâre about to stop for coffee then be on our way?â You see the notifications on your phone.Â
wonton: we just picked up riki
jaeyunnie: whoâs we
wonton: me jay and yn
jaeyunnie: AYOOOOOOO YN
you: JAEYUNIE :DD
jaeyunnie: idk why i thought jay was driving alone. whatever this is about to be the best camping trip of my Life. even better than last year
sun sun: is it just me or is jake always really fucking dramatic. also iâm lowkey offended i wasnât invited last year âŠ
jaeyunnie: shut Up u know nothing about me sunoo. and u were in bejing how tf could you have gone with us
sun sun: so much attitude đ
fanghoon: yn save me PLEASE. iâm in a car filled with animals
sun sun: HEY
jaeyunnie: who are you calling an animal big guy ?
you: sunghoon what makes you think i can do thatÂ
you: jk come over here ~i will protect you~
fanghoon: Thank You. Itâs Literally 8am
jaeyunnie: u guys need to become morning people
you: pass
sun sun: PASSÂ
sun sun: noona we are the same đââïž
you: i know thatâs right
wonton: weâre gonna stop for coffee before heading to the campsiteÂ
jaeyunnie: oh shit we should make heeseung stop for coffee too
wonton: jay says to stop blowing up his phone in the group chat. weâll text you when we stop for gas and when weâve arrived. bye!!!
***
After one stop to fill up Jayâs gas tank (you paid for him as a thank you) and a snack run (Jungwon and Riki split the cost), the four of you are at the campsite in no time. Youâre all somewhat grateful that itâs a little bit cloudy outside because the sun was killing you on the two-hour mark of your road trip. The weather is a little cooler and you tug on the sweater that Jungwonâs dad gave you. Â
You see your other friends park just after you do. Jungwon and Riki are first to get out of the car and greet them like they havenât seen the group in years while you and Jay take your time getting out of your seats. Since when did your joints become so stiff? You blame it on the fact that you woke up from a nap just a few minutes before you arrived.Â
âThis place was hard to find,â you hear Heeseung say from a distance. You try not to let it dampen your mood.Â
âWhereâs Y/N?â Youâre sure that was Jake.Â
âWaking up, probably,â says Jungwon. âShe took a nap in the car and we just woke her up.âÂ
âThe drive wasnât even that long.â You assume your best friend gives Heeseung some kind of reaction before the latter apologizes quickly.Â
Jake is by the passenger door as you open it and looks at you like a dog who wants to be taken out on a walk. He holds the handle to the door and bounces in his shoes until you push yourself out of the car. The loud slamming of the door behind you makes you wince. Jake pulls you into a hug faster than you can process.Â
âI missed you dude,â Jake says. He puts his arm over your shoulder and slowly leads you to the group. âDid you have a good summer?â
âYou know, despite the incredibly hot weather that made me feel like I would sweat to death, summer wasnât so bad. How was Brisbane?â
âI missed the heat,â Jake says with a pout. âBut it was pretty good to be back home for a month. I really missed my parents and my brother.âÂ
âIâm sure they missed you too.â
Jungwon spots you. âYour eyes are so puffy.â He takes his thumbs and tries to put more color underneath your eyes and onto your cheeks. Riki, Sunoo, and Jay have slipped away to start setting up camp.
Jake laughs beside you when you swat Jungwonâs hands away and lets his own arms fall when you lurch forward to give him a taste of his own medicine. He always liked that Jungwon was able to bring out a childish side to you because heâs always seen you carry yourself like you had to shoulder the weight of the world. Watching you chase Jungwon as he tried to escape your pinching fingers made him a bit more happier knowing youâd have friends like him to return to when you came back from Japan.Â
Heeseung, however, rolls his eyes and speaks low. âSheâs so childish.âÂ
âDude,â Sunghoon sighs in exasperation. âWeâre gonna be with her for a week. You need to quit making those comments.âÂ
Heeseung shrugs. âWhat? Itâs not like she can hear what Iâm saying.âÂ
âYeah, but we can. Weâre friends with her too, Heeseung.âÂ
The eldest tries to hold in his disdain. âYeah, whatever. Iâll keep shit to myself.âÂ
âJust for now,â Jake encourages. âY/N never starts anything with you but sometimes you say something that goes a little too far. No one is asking you to be her best friend.â
âJust remember it was Y/Nâs mom and Jungwonâs parents who invited all of us,â Sunghoon reminds his friend. âWe wouldnât be here without them and if I recall correctly, you really wanted to come when you found out we were all planning to go.â Heeseung wants to argue and justify why heâs annoyed but canât find a good enough reason.Â
âYouâre right,â he relents. âIâll make nice but do not expect me to do shit for her.â
âWe arenât.â Sunghoon pats Heeseungâs back. âYouâve got this. Itâs supposed to be a fun trip before we all go back to reality. All we want is one week where you two donât create tension.âÂ
âI can do that.â Jake and Sunghoon share a look between the two of them when Heeseung isnât looking and pray that he means it.
When Jungwon decides heâs out of breath, he accepts his fate and runs into Sunghoonâs arms when you outstretch your arms to pinch his cheeks and pull them apart like heâs made out of dough. The broken laughter coming from your best friend makes you laugh too. Everyone, save for Heeseung, laughs when Jungwonâs face becomes distorted due to your fingers.Â
Eventually, you pull away from him and he starts to grab his duffle bag and the lawn chairs. The three of you follow suit once you realize youâre missing a few people. You lift your duffle over your shoulder and put on your hiking backpack while trying to hold more lawnshairs than you can carry.Â
âWoah,â Sunghoon says as he catches a falling chair. âLet me help.â
âThanks, Hoon. I donât know why I thought I could carry two chairs at once.âÂ
âYouâre strong but youâre also carrying a fuck ton of things.âÂ
He smiles at you and it makes you laugh. You havenât seen much of Sunghoon over the summer because heâs been working nonstop at a local ice rink, teaching kids how to skate in back to back summer classes. Sunghoon is sometimes too tired to hang out after work or falls asleep on your couch whenever he hangs out with you to watch movies. Your mom thinks itâs a bit endearing and never has the heart to wake him up. Between Sunghoonâs impromptu sleepovers, Jungwon and Sunooâs unannounced visits, Jayâs cooking and baking sessions in your kitchen, and Jake appearing out of nowhere every few nights for dinner, youâre starting to think your house might have an unspoken open door policy.Â
Heeseung is the only one who doesnât frequent your house if you donât count Riki, who doesnât spend enough time in Korea to become a permanent fixture. The only time Heeseung has been to your house is when he dropped Jungwon off after he had one too many to drink and heâd been adamant about going to your place because it was closer to the bar in comparison to your apartment. One awkward conversation later and Heeseung was out of your driveway. Jungwon woke up with a hangover the next morning and you were grateful your mother chose that weekend to take a girlâs trip with her best friends.
You donât invite Heeseung over like you do with the others. The only reason why you havenât deleted his phone number is because of the big group chat youâre in to discuss plans. He never responds to your texts in it and you donât respond to him unless absolutely necessary. Sometimes you catch him laughing at your messages only to retract it when he realizes itâs you who sent it. Itâs been six years of dealing with this and as much as it confuses you, part of you has learned to tune out this behavior and focus on the other friends you do share.Â
Sunghoon must know youâre thinking about his friend because he looks at you like heâs been trying to get your attention. âSorry,â you apologize. âWhat did you say?âÂ
âI said thanks for letting us crash your trip. I know this is something you and Jungwon do with your families every year. Canât help but feel a little special that we get to come along.âÂ
You coo at him. âDo you remember when you could barely look me in the eye, let alone tell me something as sweet as that?â Sunghoon rolls his eyes.Â
âOh, shut up. You know Iâm an introvert.â You bump your hip with his.Â
âIâm just messing with you. But in all seriousness, itâll be fun having you guys around.â
âIâm excited to see what you and Jungwon do every year.âÂ
âNothing too out of the ordinary. Swim, eat a lot of food, kayak, hike, the usual. But thereâs one spot we usually go to, just he and I, thatâs away from the main spot on the lake.âÂ
âHowâd you find it?â
âJungwon found it by accident when we were younger. He said it was gonna be our secret spot and told me not to tell our parents. I think the whole campground panicked for an hour or so until somebody found us in the clearing.âÂ
Sunghoon snorts. âYeah, that sounds like you two.âÂ
âThey told us to tell them where weâd be and promised to leave us alone if we gave them a heads up. Itâs not really noticeable if you donât know where to look, but itâs so beautiful. It leads to another part of the lake and itâs always so peaceful and quiet.âÂ
âIn that case, Iâm honored that youâre showing us.âÂ
âEh, itâs about time we add new members to the club.â
âOh?â He raises his eyebrow. âThereâs a club now?â
âMhm. Gotta pay me two fish to join.âÂ
âLike you know how to fish.â You bump your hip with his again.
âThere are things you guys donât know about me, Park. Just wait and see.âÂ
Sunghoon lets the conversation end when he finds himself at the campsite where Jay and Riki have started to organize things and make spots for tents. Itâll take a few trips for all of the supplies and camping gear to be fully unloaded so you each take turns until everything is sitting in a big pile, waiting to be sorted.Â
âOkay, Iâm a bit out of my depth,â says Sunoo, who kicks around a rock as he speaks. âI, for one, will need help pitching a tent.â
âIâll help you,â you say, nodding for him to come over.Â
âYou can pitch a tent?â Heeseung asks like he doesnât believe you.Â
You nod and pick up a bag. âYeah. I do this every year.â You donât say it with any bite in your tone but Heeseung, who forgot this fact, feels like an idiot for making a fool of himself in front of his friends. He chooses to look away from you for now.Â
âWe have three tents we need to put up,â Jay says. âIâm thinking we pitch those now, have a snack and water break, and then start to organize before we eat lunch.âÂ
âSounds good.â You agree. âIâd rather have everything set up so we can enjoy our evening. Besides, we should do this before it gets dark.âÂ
âRight.â Jungwon clears his throat and hands out each bag, assigning your friends based on the size of the tent. Everybody gets to work, clearing the flat ground of rocks and debris before deciding where your tents will go. You all hammer the groundsheet into the dirt before assembling the poles.
You teach Sunoo the basics and give him pointers when he struggles to connect the joints. Heâs learning much faster than he gives himself credit for because in no time, heâs jumping for joy when he finally manages to grasp what heâs supposed to be doing. Itâs nice to watch him be so happy over this, as Sunoo originally declined the invitation to go camping since he isn't a huge fan of the outdoors. But now itâs like you wouldâve never guessed that because heâs pretty quick to pick up your lessons.
Your tent is pitched up in no time. You roam around like a camp counselor to see if anybody needs help. Jake, Heeseung, Jay, and Jungwon seem to know what theyâre doing and have the biggest tent halfway set up. Sunghoon and Riki look like they need a bit of assistance. Sunghoonâs figuring it out quickly while Riki fumbles with his fingers.Â
âYou have to do it slowly,â you say from beside him. Riki hands you the attachments when you beckon him to hand it over and show him slowly. âLike this. See? If you do it slowly, theyâll catch easier and itâll be smoother when we feed them into the tent.âÂ
âOh.â Riki nods when your trick works. âThanks, Y/N.âÂ
The three of you pitch up your tent too, with Riki handing you the pegs to hammer them into the ground after zipping the door. Sunghoon dusts off his hands on his shorts and takes a big gulp from his water bottle. Sunooâs mom packed enough fruit and onigiri for a midday snack, and all eight of you feast quietly after exerting more power than anyone anticipated. You really need to start working out again.Â
âBefore we clear out and organize everything else, we should probably figure out who sleeps where,â Jungwon says. âThat way, we can put our stuff in our respective tents and have that out of the way.âÂ
âGood idea,â Jake says. âHow should we do this? Rock, paper, scissors?âÂ
âSure, but I think Y/N and I should share a tent.â Heeseung rolls his eyes at Jungwon and you see it from the corner of your vision.
âWhat?â Riki asks. âWhy?âÂ
âBecause all of you get too comfortable around her and forget she doesnât want to hear you snore or see your boxers in the morning.â Jungwon laughs. âItâll be easier since weâve been camping together anyway. Sheâs used to rooming with me and Iâm used to waking up next to a Zombie.âÂ
âI hate you.â Jungwon merely smiles at you. Â
âYou just want to get out of sharing a tent with three people,â says Sunghoon. Jungwon nods.Â
âThat too.âÂ
âRock, paper, scissors it is,â Sunoo says, getting his hands ready.Â
They all battle one another until the rooming situation is sorted. You and Jungwon will share a tent while Sunoo and Jay share the other smaller one. That leaves Jake, Sunghoon, Riki, and Heeseung sharing the big one. You all throw your belongings in before helping Jay organize the portable stove, chairs, and other things that need to be stored properly.Â
When all is said and done an hour later, Jay and Sunghoon start a barbecue. All of you are spent, sagging your bodies in the camping chairs that are positioned around the campfire. You know youâll need to fetch some wood from the outpost if you all want to have a bonfire. But that can be a task for later.
âYour mom makes the best onigiri,â Riki groans as he shoves another bite in his mouth. âIt reminds me so much of home.âÂ
Sunoo smiles proudly. âSheâs the best, isnât she?â Jake, who is busy stuffing his face with sliced watermelons, agrees. They pick at the leftovers from snack time and Jay chides them for it.
âDonât spoil yourselves too much or you wonât have an appetite for lunch.âÂ
âHeâs so bossy,â Riki says as he leans over towards you. âBut itâs kinda nice having someone who does shit and takes charge.âÂ
You nod. âMhm. Usually Jungwon and I are the ones spearheading everything but Jayâs got some camping experience. Iâm fine taking the backseat.âÂ
âDo you camp a lot? Besides this tradition, I mean.â Riki watches you shake your head.Â
âNo, not really. This is as much as I can handle. Itâs more like a gigantic lake house with hot showers and a few convenience stores miles away to replenish food if we run out of anything.â
âIt looks like you know what youâre doing.â
âThatâs because I do, Riki.âÂ
He blushes. âRight. Thanks for helping me with my tent earlier.âÂ
âDonât sweat it. Youâll be able to do it without my help in no time.â That brings a shimmer of hope to the younger boy sitting next to you.Â
Heeseung avoids looking at you when Riki purposefully sits beside you on the empty lawn chair. He doesnât completely understand why the younger boy likes you so much. Heeseng thinks youâre a nuisance and that you overstay your welcome at hangouts. But Riki clings to you like youâre his lifeline and he gets that youâre his half-sister and all, but you werenât the most welcoming to him when he started hanging out in Korea more often. Riki would never tell Heeseung the details about his past and he never tried to pry past what the youngest would reveal. Six years of avoiding you made him forget every single detail he once knew about you when youâd both been somewhat friendly towards one another.Â
There were some days when you wouldnât make room in your schedule to see Riki as often as heâd wanted you to and he lamented that to Heeseung. But every time heâd start to talk about how unfair it was for you to pick and choose when you got to see our younger brother, Riki would defend you every time. He didnât get it, feeling the frustration bubble to the surface before realizing that it wasnât his place to question why Riki acted the way he did. Sure, he was younger than Heeseung, but he respected family matters and didnât care about you enough to figure you out anyway.Â
He keeps these feelings to himself mostly. The friends you share donât really understand why he has a distaste for you and he refuses to elaborate because the memory is too painful, and instead chooses to bury these feelings. Itâs nobodyâs business anyway. He certainly doesnât want to start anything with Riki involved because he would feel guilty for putting him in an uncomfortable position, and because he knows heâd defend you regardless. Even though youâve made progress to open up yourself to Riki, Heeseung still scoffs whenever he sees the two of you together.Â
By the time lunch is done, all eight of you are crowded around a table built into the ground, feasting on meat and vegetables. Everybody thanks Jay for cooking and the seven of you agree to clean up after every meal so Jay doesnât have to work twice as hard. Youâre not sitting too far from Heeseung (to both of your dismay). Sunghoon purposely sat in between you both when he realized the other empty spots were filling up and didnât want to chance an uproar during mealtime.Â
âSo,â Sunoo starts to say after closing the bottle cap on his cola. âWhatâs on the agenda for today? Personally, I think we should take it easy until tomorrow.âÂ
âI agree.â Jungwon nods. âWeâve done a lot and drove for a while. I say we relax and do whatever until dinner.âÂ
âIâm going to nap, thatâs for sure.â You all snicker at Jay. Typical.Â
âMe too,â says Riki.Â
âIs anyone up for walking around the lake?â Jake asks.Â
âI could go,â Sunghoon says from next to you.Â
âSure,â you finally say, âwhy not.âÂ
âI think Iâll hang back here.â Heeseung says it almost immediately and it stings a bit. âIâll probably nap too.âÂ
âI want to read.â Sunoo changes the direction of the conversation before anyone can pick up on the awkwardness and you throw him a smile.Â
âI think Iâll join you.â Jungwon pulls a book from his backpack and the pair begin to brainstorm where they should sit. Natural chatter falls back into place and you focus on eating, as your stomach has been grumbling pretty loud.Â
Heeseung breaks the silence. âCan someone pass me the pineapple?â You donât register that your arm has moved on its own accord and pass the container to him. Heeseung gives you a look you canât decipher and itâs only then you realize what youâve done. Sunghoon gulps.Â
âThanks,â Heeseung mutters, taking the pineapple from your hands. Youâre pleasantly surprised he doesnât make a comment about how he isnât craving it anymore and watch him eat some from the corner or your eye.Â
By nightfall, all of you are too exhausted to sit around the campfire. The hot shower stalls provide the kind of warmth you would go crazy without and you find yourself contemplating underneath the water longer than youâd like to admit. A plethora of thoughts run across your mind and they drift from the events of today, Riki, Heeseung, and moving to Okayama. Your friends donât bring up the move and youâre grateful for that.Â
When you return from the shower and from brushing your teeth, Jungwon asks if youâre okay. You lie and say youâre fine but exhausted and he lets it go, too tired himself to pry the truth out of you. The last thing you think about is Heeseung. You send a silent prayer out into the universe and ask that the two of you are able to make nice during this camping trip. Then, you fall asleep.
***
Everybody is up bright and early after a good nightâs sleep. All of you agree todayâs the best day for a short hike to get used to the terrain before you explore harder trails. You and Jungwon know the hike like the back of your hand and lead the group expertly through trees and dirt pathways. All of you have a backpack for your essentials, and each of you has packed a portable lunch for when you reach the top of the peak at the end of the trail.Â
Halfway into the hike is not as uphill as you recalled it to be. The scenery is still breathtaking and you temporarily forget that Heeseung is burning eyes in the back of your skull. Last nightâs prayer seems to be working, as he hasnât said a word to you or argued with you when you started leading everybody towards the start of the hiking path. Youâre not sure whether his feelings about you changed or if he knows youâre the literal expert since you grew up here, but you donât think you care either way.Â
Heeseung makes a false step and twists his ankle. You hear the commotion behind you and turn around. He stumbles and a sharp edge of a branch catches his thigh, creating a gash that starts to bleed. Everyone crowds around him when they realize it and make him sit on a large rock and he feels like shouting at you to back away when you start to walk towards him.
âGuys, Iâm fine. Itâs not that bad.â He feels more embarrassed than hurt.Â
Jake looks concerned. âDude, your leg is bleeding.âÂ
âItâs just a cut.âÂ
âLet me inspect it.âÂ
You pull your backpack off of you and take out your water bottle and first aid kit. You drop to your knees to inspect the wound and Heeseung refrains from coughing at the awkward position from where heâs sitting. You donât seem phased by it, however, as you push up the fabric of his shorts and use your water bottle to clean the dirt from his wound.Â
Your face is somewhat close to his leg and he jumps when your hand touches his thigh. The guys mistake his sudden movements as pain and rush to help stabilize him. Heeseung insists that heâs fine and brushes them off of him. He wonât admit that his fidgeting is because the last thing he expected you to do was patch him up. He figures Jungwon would be good at that kind of stuff, not you.Â
Heeseung winces at the sudden contact of water in his wound. âOkay, maybe it hurts a little.â
âYou wonât need stitches or anything, but I should get you cleaned up and put a bandage on it.â
Heeseung watches as you do your best to clean it with the wipes you have and ointment that will keep any debris out. The wound isnât too gnarly but itâs no small papercut either. He watches as you expertly deal with the wound and keeps quiet, even though he feels uncomfortable and wishes he could turn back time to avoid any of this. Itâs awkward to know your hands are on him because he feels like ants are crawling up his leg.
âI think we should probably go back and rest a little,â says Jungwon. âWe can eat lunch there and maybe hang out for a bit.â
âGood idea,â Heeseung mutters when youâve stepped away from him. Sunghoon and Riki each help him up and allow the eldest to use them as crutches as he limps back to the base. He mutters a quiet âthank youâ in your direction and doesnât pay attention to see your reaction. You feel like you got your hopes up for nothing because he turns his back towards you before you can smile at him. Defeated, you try to put your best self on display and follow everybody back to your tents.Â
Heeseung decides to rest on the chairs and eat his lunch there. You arenât particularly eager to spend any time with him and figure heâd appreciate it if you werenât around while he recovered. You take your sack of lunch and tell Jungwon youâll be walking around the lake like you did yesterday. He tells you to be safe and then youâre on your way.Â
âHey, wait up!â You turn around to see Jake running until heâs caught up with you. Itâs a bit unfair how he barely runs out of breath when he jogs. Itâs definitely because heâs an athlete, but itâs still unfair.Â
âCare to join?âÂ
âCanât a guy accompany his friend on a nice, brisk walk?âÂ
That makes you laugh. âYeah, sure.â You fall in a quiet tandem enjoying the silence and the environment for a while. âI had a lot of fun camping last year. I think my favorite part was kayaking or when Jungwon accidentally dropped his entire sâmore in the fire.âÂ
You snicker at the memory. âHis mom was so mad that he kept eating the marshmallows.âÂ
âYeah, it was pretty funny. I still feel kind of embarrassed that I managed to flip over in my kayak somehow.âÂ
âEh, it makes for a good story.â
âItâs not my fault Jungwon slammed into me!â Jake defends when you begin to laugh. âSeriously, Y/N. How the fuck do you put up with that menace?âÂ
âThe same way you do, dummy.â
Jake bites into his sandwich. âI love Jungwon.â
âMe too.âÂ
âOur parents loved having you come too. Jungwonâs dad loves fishing with people.â
âI still canât believe how many we were able to catch. Iâm sad the guys werenât there because they keep shitting on me for not being able to catch any when we go together.âÂ
You bump your shoulder against his. âThey donât know what I know. Iâm sure my mom has pictures somewhere.âÂ
âHow is she, by the way?â Jake asks.Â
âEommaâs doing alright. She just got a huge bonus at work for managing a really difficult client and completing this campaign sheâs been working on. It stressed her out for months but Iâm happy if sheâs happy.âÂ
âThatâs awesome. Iâm happy for her.âÂ
âHow are things with your family? Howâs Layla?âÂ
âMy parents are actually on a trip to the States to see some family and my brother just got promoted at his job. Iâm super proud of him. He worked really hard for it. Laylaâs doing okay too. Sheâs staying with my cousin until I come back.âÂ
âI miss her.â
âShe probably misses you too.âÂ
The two of you settle into a comfortable pace and eat your lunches. There are no awkward moments with Jake. Something about his personality makes everyone around him divulge their deepest secrets and he always seems to know what to say, too. You havenât been close to him for very long but you know him well enough to know that heâll keep anything you say between the two of you.Â
âI know you probably feel a little awkward with Heeseung around but youâve been handling it really well.â Jakeâs tone softens and he looks straight ahead as he talks, breaking the temporary silence. âI donât know what goes on in his head half the time.âÂ
âI just wish I knew what I did so I can apologize and fix it. He gets mad every time I ask and accuses me of bringing up bad memories for him. I donât know what to do, Jake. It feels like he gets along with everybody in my life but me.âÂ
âWe all know Heeseungâs been through a lot and has trouble talking about them sometimes. Heâs been in therapy but we had to really convince him to set an appointment.âÂ
You scoff. âSounds like him.â Jake doesnât disagree.Â
âI guess I understand that having to deal with shitty cards makes a person go insane.â
âSure. I just wish I wasnât the scapegoat.â Jake winces but tries not to let you see.Â
âSorry youâre going through this. Sunghoon and I made him swear to be on his best behavior.âÂ
âItâs a little awkward still but at least he isnât picking a fight with me. Although, who knows how long thatâll last.â
âHave a little more faith in him, Y/N.â You deadpan and he holds his hand up in mock surrender. âOkay, next topic. How are you feeling about Japan?âÂ
Your shoulders slump. âAwful.âÂ
Jakeâs head quirks like he doesnât understand. âWhat do you mean? You were really excited when you got the job offer.âÂ
âI know butâŠit doesnât feel right anymore. My whole life is about to change and I donât know how I feel about that.â
âYou donât have to know anything. In fact, Iâd be a little worried if you had your shit figured out.â You punch his arm. âItâs really cool that youâre leaving Korea to pursue your dream. I know how hard it is to leave everything behind for a better opportunity.â
You look at him softly and nod because you know he empathizes with you. Back when you first met him, heâd moved from Australia to Korea because your university had one of the best physics programs in the world. He knew how to speak your native Korean but wasnât confident in conversing back then, and you had your fair share of mentoring him in formal greeting and the basics when it came to interacting with people. Jake definitely understands where youâre coming from and doesnât want you to feel alone.Â
âWeâll always be here for you too,â he reassures. âWe wonât be too far away and you can come home whenever you have the time and arenât working.âÂ
âI know, but it feels like everything in my life is changing at the same time and thereâs nothing I can do to stop it. I wish I was a freshman again. I wish I could turn back time and really enjoy my life before I make a life changing decision.âÂ
âYouâre really torn up about this, arenât you?â
Nodding, you look at the ground beneath you. âThere are so many things Iâve been dealing with over the past few years or so and it feels like Iâm giving up on things if I just leave. Everything feels so scary, you know? I feel like Iâm being suffocated every time I open my eyes.Â
âOn top of starting a new job in a place Iâm not that familiar with, Iâm leaving my mom behind. Iâve never lived farther than an hour away from her and I hate knowing that I wonât be able to see her whenever I want. Not to mention Riki studying in Korea means Iâll be spending even more time with him.â
Jake chooses not to comment and nods with his lips pressed into a thin line. He doesnât know whatâs going on between the two of you but has his suspicions after hearing your hushed conversations with Jungwon. Even before the two of you became as close as you are, Jake has always looked out for you because he knows Jungwon loves you like a sister. It was easy to tell that youâd fallen into some sort of depression as you graduated high school and barely managed to pull yourself out of it before graduating university.Â
Riki has always been a sore subject for you. Jake doesnât bring him up unless you do, no matter how much he adores the younger boy. The relationship you have with him is complicated but it tears him up inside to see Riki longing for you when the two of you are together. Jake knows thereâs a great deal of tension that follows both of you too. He could feel it the first time you brought up having a half-brother and started to put the pieces together.Â
âI love that Rikiâs more comfortable in Korea. I really do,â you confess. âI love that my friends get along with him too, but part of me is scared that youâll all forget about me since heâll be here to take my place.âÂ
âYou are not replaceable.â Jake looks at you when he says it. âYouâre about to chase your dream, Y/N. None of us will throw our friendship down the drain just because we wonât be able to see you everyday. Riki is great but heâs not you.â
Heâs pleased when you lift the corners of your mouth into a small smile. âThanks, Jake. I donât know where this fear came from.âÂ
âYouâre dealing with a lot. Itâs understandable. I donât know much about whatâs going on between you and Riki, and you donât have to tell me, but you should know that he loves you a lot and would never think about dishonoring you while youâre gone.âÂ
âI know. I have a lot of pent up emotions and therapy feels like it isnât working. I guess I should give myself some more time. But with the move, itâs been hard to focus on anything. I donât want Riki to feel like I donât want him in my life but itâs hard to make room for somebody you didnât know existed until a few years ago.âÂ
Jake nods. âYeah, I get that. It feels a bit weird making space for someone who calls himself your brother, isnât it?âÂ
âHe has every right to. I mean, heâs my half-brother. But I donât knowâŠI want to be at a place where I can look at him and not see how much my life has changed for the worst. Heâs such a talented kid with a bright future and I hate that I project my feelings onto him.âÂ
âBaby steps,â Jake reassures. âYouâve been through a lot of shit. Both you and your mom have and you've both handled it really well.âÂ
âIâm glad it looks that way because I feel like Iâm hanging on by a thread.âÂ
âWell, thatâs what it means to be in your early twenties.â  Â
The two of you decide to head back to the campsite when it starts to get warmer. You throw your trash in garbage bins before trotting back and see that Sunoo and Jay have left to go back hiking on the trail that you were on earlier in the day. Heeseung seems to fare better with his wound, which you see heâs managed to replace (thanks to Jungwon, no doubt). But his mood seems to worsen when he sees you and Jake walking side by side towards the group.Â
âHow was the lake?â Jungwon asks, sipping on a cola.
âPretty,â Jake replies. âThere werenât that many people there so it was a little empty.âÂ
âWe should probably discuss what we want to do for the rest of the day and plan some stuff for later this week. Itâll be a little warmer later in the week so I think we should save that. Thereâs a great spot where Y/N and I go fishing. We could do that later in the morning.â
âY/N, fishing?â Heeseung laughs. âIâd pay to see that.â
âWhat, you donât think I can fish?âÂ
He shrugs. âI didnât know you were a fan of the outdoors. You always had a nose in your textbooks so I thought that was it for you.âÂ
âWell, Heeseung, itâs not like the two of us know each other well enough to know these types of things.â He doesnât seem to like that answer.Â
âFishing tomorrow it is!â Jake interjects.Â
âI havenât gone fishing in a long time,â Riki laments. âItâll be nice to have trout for dinner.âÂ
âI think Jay brought a lot of seasoning and sides,â Jungwon says to the group. âWe can always go to the market a few miles down for anything else.âÂ
You tune out the rest of the conversation, feeling a bit tired from the walk and the heat thatâs starting to make you sweat. Youâre eternally grateful that your tent is covered in shade and contemplate on taking a nap when Jungwon waves at you.
âYou good, Y/N? You seem a little out of it.â You nod at Jungwon and take a seat next to the closest camp chair. You can feel Heeseung watching you and try not to slip as you sink down into the seat, crossing one of your legs over the other.Â
âYeah, Iâm fine. Just have a lot going on in my head. I think Iâm a little tired, tooâ
Heeseung scoffs quietly. âWeâre camping. What could you possibly be thinking about thatâs making Jungwon worried?â You curl into yourself as Jungwon chides his friend.Â
âIâm moving to Japan soon,â you tell him. Youâre not even sure that he knows this about you, figuring that one of your friends would tell him to you at some point. Neither of you communicate with one another unless you absolutely have to. You didnât see the point in telling him. âIâve been thinking a lot about that, I guess.â
An array of emotions seems to wash over him and, as always, you have a hard time trying to figure out what heâs feeling and thinking. âOh. So youâll be out of Korea?â
âYup.âÂ
âWhen are you leaving?âÂ
âDonât seem too excited,â Sunghoon says underneath a cough.
âIn a couple of weeks. I leave a little after we get back home.â Heeseung merely nods. He doesnât ask you why youâre moving or what part of Japan youâll be living in and you donât offer that information, feeling awkward with the tension ever since you and Jake arrived back at the campsite. Riki finishes eating and stands up to throw his trash away, providing something to look at in order to forget that Heeseung keeps trying to look away from you.Â
âY/Nâs gonna be an engineer,â Jungwon brags on your behalf. âSheâs taking a year off to work before getting her masterâs degree.âÂ
âDamn,â Riki whistles. âYouâre so smart.â You try to hide a smile.Â
âWhat are you gonna be working on?â Sunghoon asks.Â
âIâll be assisting other researchers in software development, particularly for space and aeronautics.â You nod once, feeling tense underneath everyoneâs stare. âI donât know what Iâll be doing specifically but thatâs why Iâm moving to Okayama.âÂ
âThatâs so cool!â Jake exclaims. Heseung rolls his eyes at his excited outburst and tries to avoid your eye. âYouâre gonna be amazing.âÂ
âI hope so. Itâs a great opportunity to work in my chosen field before I decide to continue in this career when I go back to school. I have so many interests within mathematics but this seems like the right place to start.â
âShit,â Sunghoon says as he slowly claps for dramatic effect. âI knew you were smart but youâre a fucking genius.â
âI wouldnât say geniusââ
âYou are, though.â Jungwon smiles at you and gives two thumbs up. âYouâre the smartest person I know, dude. This company is lucky to have you.â
âSo cool,â Jake says again. He bumps Heeseungâs shoulder with the back of his hand. âIsnât that right, Heseung?âÂ
âYeah, totally,â he says carelessly, giving you a half-hearted smile. His mouth doesnât quite reach his eyes and you refrain from audibly sighing.Â
âDonât you think Y/N was always the smartest person in our year?â Heeseung nods. Jake nudges his friend again.Â
âYes,â Heeseung says with a great amount of venom in his tone. He shakes off Jakeâs hand from his body abruptly, causing the younger boy to take a step back in shock. He looks at you and musters an insincere smile when he notices the rest of your friends watching. âY/N is so smart.âÂ
His sarcasm deafens your ears and makes your blood feel like it could be boiling beneath your skin. The atmosphere around you changes. Riki and Jungwon try to pretend like everything is normal while Jake and Sunghoon give Heeseung wide eyes as if to tell him to knock it off. You look at your lap, uncomfortable with the silence that washes over.Â
âWhyâs it so quiet?â Sunoo asks from behind you. The group collectively sighs and youâre all thankful that he and Jay returned from their hike to cut the tension.Â
âWe were just talking about what we wanted to do for the rest of the day,â Jungwon says before anyone can speak. âLetâs take it easy tonight and go fishing tomorrow.âÂ
âSounds good to me.â Jay takes a seat and takes a big gulp of water. âLetâs heat up some kimchi jjigae for dinner because I don't feel like cooking. Jakeâs mom made enough for all of us to have seconds.âÂ
None of you disagree. Feeling yourself grow more tired the more your friends converse with one another, you manage to catch Jungwonâs eye and nod at him before heading inside the tent.Â
***
Itâs not unusual for you to wake up with what feels like a heavy heart but youâre having a hard time pushing yourself off of the uncomfortable ground to get ready for the day. Jungwon is asleep beside you with his knee digging into your side but even that isnât enough to motivate you to leave the tent.Â
You mourn the loss of your mom and his parents accompanying you on this trip. As fun as hanging out with your friends are, having Heeseung constantly avoiding eye contact and muttering things underneath your breath has you feeling more on edge than you anticipated. It always feels like heâs waiting for you to mess up so he can get a word in or wait for the perfect moment to drop a subtle insult that only you can catch. Sunghoon and Jake in particular try their best to restrain him but that doesnât do much. Eating dinner was awkward and you blamed your quiet nature on sleeping too deeply.Â
Finally, you sit up in your spot and rub the sleep out of your eyes. It doesnât seem like any of the other guys are up and you pull a clock out to read the time. Itâs still early and the people around you are still waking up as well. Your movements seem to have woken up Jungwon, who yawns when he opens his eyes.
âMorning,â he croaks. âDid you sleep okay?â
âIt was fine. Woke up a few times because of people stepping on twigs, though.â
âYeah, same. I think Jake got up in the middle of the night to use the bathroom. Woke up to him walking by the tent.â Jungwon sits up and brushes the hair out of his eyes. âIâm so hungry thinking about all the trout weâre about to eat tonight.âÂ
âIf you catch any.â He swats your arm.Â
âI alway catch more than you.â
âNuh-uh. Last year I beat you by two fish.â
âY/N, Iâve caught more fish than you every year before that.âÂ
âShut up.âÂ
You hear Jungwon laughing as you exit the tent to freshen up at the bathhouse. There are a few people milling about when you walk towards the structure. Your mouth feels a bit grimey from your morning breath and the cold water that hits your face wakes you up immediately. When you turn around after youâve finished your morning routine, you collide right into Heeseung.
âWatch it.âÂ
âI didnât see you. Geez.â Your heart continues thumping as you grip your toiletry bag. Heeseung rolls his eyes and slips past you. Anger rises within you but you decide that itâs not worth getting so worked up over at this hour.Â
As time ticks by, the rest of your friend group emerge from their tents and gather around the campfire. You all wait for everyone to wake up and prepare themselves for the day, enjoying a nice breakfast with a cool breeze until youâre all ready to go fishing. You secure the bucket hat Jungwonâs dad gave you until it fits snugly over your head and forego a jacket, only packing the necessities while you wait for everybody else to gather their belongings before youâre all walking to the boathouse.Â
The instructors are the same from last year. You and Jungwon make small talk and explain that neither of your parents are here on this trip and you tell them about Japan when they ask you about life after college. Each of your friends introduce themselves and after a quick introduction, theyâre leading all eight of you out onto the dock.Â
There are enough boats for two pairs of three and one for two people. It seems as though you were too preoccupied talking to the employees because you realize the only boat left is one shared with Heeseung and Riki.Â
âOh,â comes your meek voice in realization as you watch the two step onto the boat.
âYou should man the engine,â the employee says as the two men get on before you. âYouâre more familiar.â
âI can steer,â Heeseung says. âIâve done it before.âÂ
âIâve watched Y/N steer these boats for a decade, son. Youâll definitely want her to do it.âÂ
Heeseung relents. Itâs a small victory, but a victory nonetheless,Â
You step onto the boat. Heeseung sits at the far end while Riki sits in the middle, holding onto the seat as you get your bearings. The three of you wave goodbye to the employees at the dock and you start to drive the boat out into the lake to catch up with the rest of your friends.
The open clearing away from the port is more beautiful than you can describe. With open waters and enough room to roam around, thereâs an array of directions to catch the most fish. The water is fairly calm with the exception of the ripples your boat makes. Riki and Heeseung donât say a word as you steer them towards a clear path with minimal boats and see the other guys scattered around the large body of water.Â
Neither of them argue with you about where to go, even though Heeseung is holding himself back. Bitter over having you steer, he knows itâs the logical answer since you know this place like the back of your hand. He instead chooses to bask in the sunlight and welcomes the spray of water on his face and body. The cool splashes are a nice contrast to the warm sunlight.Â
When you start to slow the boat down, the water around you becomes still as well. You turn the engine off and wait for the contraption to settle beneath you. The sound of water rippling against itself is enough to make you feel more at ease and you donât mind it when you see Heeseung start to assemble bait on the fishing poles.
âWhyâd you pick this place?â Riki asks.
âI caught a lot of fish here last year. I hope we can catch more this year.â
âMore than Jungwon?â
You smile. âYeah. He and I have this unspoken competition.â
âWhatâs the prize?â
âThereâs not really a prize. Itâs just something we do.â
âWhatâs the point of competing if thereâs no prize?â Heeseung interjects. You shrug.
âDunno. Itâs fun for us.â He doesnât say anything after that.Â
Itâs quiet for a while. The sound of birds chirping and faint chatter in the background fill the atmosphere but the three of you silently agree to refrain from talking once youâve all casted your reels. Riki, who is a bit excited to catch some fish, anxiously peers at the water below him every few minutes or so. He pulls back with a pout when he doesnât feel a tug on his line. The awkward tension somewhat dissipates and youâre able to forget that Heeseung is a few feet away from you. He angles his face towards the water and seems to be in his own bubble as you hold your fishing rod.Â
Growing up on this campsite means learning the virtue of patience and willing yourself to become more in tune with your surroundings. It was your father that first taught you that the most important rule to fishing was patience. Heâd tell you the fishes could sense urgency and impatience from underneath the water, and therefore they knew not to take your bait. It made sense to you at a young age. Every time youâd be on the water with him, youâd force yourself to slow down and calm your thoughts until the silence felt like a welcomed embrace.Â
That mantra of practicing patience seeps into your life now that your dad isnât in it anymore. Jungwonâs father had volunteered to go fishing with you the first year your own chose not to go on the annual camping trip. Everyone could tell how difficult it was for you and your mother to attend, but despite hardship and the change in dynamics, she didnât want either of you to lose any semblance of normalcy. Youâd argue that was the hardest week of your life. Jungwon, who is usually very organized and detail oriented, chose to let you lead the trip activities between the two of you and didnât complain once.
The two of you were in high school when your father left and Jungwon swears it was like somebody stole the sun from your eyes. Your studies became the sole focus of your life and even Heeseung was barely at the forefront of your mind anymore. Heâd watch you become detached from everything that didnât have to do with academics and extracurriculars. Focusing on college applications was the most important thing for you back then.Â
Of course, Jungwon and all of your friends gave you a bit of space to process new feelings and the change in household. Your father moved away and wasn't living in the house anymore. It started to become an empty shell, where neither you nor your mother could stand eating at the dining table because it brought up unwanted memories. Your dad wasnât here to help you with homework anymore and you could no longer hear your parents talk outside of your door until you fell asleep. The complete silence startled you. It still does sometimes, but youâve learned that grief is about facing your hardships until it isnât so scary anymore.Â
These trips are bittersweet every year. Fishing is a reminder of everything youâve lost. But lately, youâre starting to think about it as everything you could gain and then some. Â
âThe more you look down, the more the fish are gonna be scared,â you say, breaking the quiet atmosphere. Riki looks at you quizzically.Â
âReally?â
âNo, but youâre not gonna catch anything faster just by looking down.â His shoulders sag.Â
âWeâve been here for so long and nothing has tugged on my line.âÂ
âFishing is a game of chance. The fish choose to take your bait if it feels enticed enough.â As if on cue, your fishing rod starts to move. Riki watches you latch onto it while Heeseung turns back when he feels the boat rock underneath him and observes you too. You wrestle with it for a short while before reeling the fish above water and proudly hold it beside you. âPatience is the most important part of fishing. The fish finds you when you least expect it.â Heeseung snorts when you put the fish in the bucket. It takes a great deal out of you not to roll your eyes.Â
âYouâre so wise,â Riki mutters.Â
âI donât think Iâm wise, per se. I just think thereâs nothing else you can do when youâre in open water with nothing to distract you.âÂ
âIâm working on my patience. Moving to Korea made that pretty difficult for me.âÂ
âWell, youâre moving to a new country. Itâs something youâve never done before, you know? I bet packing was stressful.âÂ
âI hated every second of it,â he says as he rolls his eyes like youâve brought out an irritating memory. âI triple checked everything before leaving. I hope I didnât forget anything back home.âÂ
âAre you scared to start the semester?â
Riki thinks about it for a second. âKind of. My Korean is okay, but I still have trouble saying certain words. The culture is different, too. I need to get used to that more. I guess Iâm a bit sad that I had to leave my friends and family behind but itâs for the best, isnât it? I wanted this.âÂ
You find yourself nodding in agreement. âYeah. Itâs hard to leave everything you know behind.âÂ
âI cried when I said goodbye to my dance teachers,â Riki admits with a laugh. âI think it was the first time I did that in front of them. We kept bowing to each other until I had to go. Itâll be weird finding a new studio in Seoul but Iâm excited about it.âÂ
âYouâre an incredible dancer, Riki. Thereâs no doubt in my mind that youâll thrive here.âÂ
He tries to hide his blush. âThanks. Iâm happy that I know some people already but itâs not the same, you know?âÂ
âThatâs how I feel about moving to Okayama. I know itâll only be a year, but it feels like Iâll be there for a lifetime.âÂ
âDo you ever get scared that everything back home will change?â Heeseung, too, is curious about your answer.Â
âHonestly? Yeah. Sometimes it feels like everythingâs gonna change completely the second I step on that plane. I feel like everyone will forget me and move on.â
Riki looks back at the water. âI wonder if people back home think of me.âÂ
âThey do.â He looks back at you.
âEveryone here will think about you too.âÂ
A beat passes between the two of you and you start to see Riki for what he is: a smart, sensitive person who disguises himself as somebody who can mask his feelings. What you learn is that your half-brother wears his heart on his sleeve but is careful about who he gives himself too. Itâs something youâve noticed in the time youâve known him, but this trip is starting to make you think you two are more alike than not.Â
âWhat about you, Heeseung?â Riki asks, turning to look at the eldest. âWhat are you gonna be doing now that you graduated?âÂ
âI, uh, start working at a record label pretty soon.â He clears his throat. Knowing youâre looking at him makes this boat feel smaller all of the sudden.Â
âYou majored in music production, right?â Heeseung nods.Â
âYeah. Iâve always had an interest in music so I learned how to produce during freshman year and started taking it seriously.â
âIâll bet your perfect pitch helps you a lot.â Heeseung whips his gaze over to you when you speak and you feel your skin burn. You donât know if you shouldâve contributed to the conversation or not.Â
âSure does,â he says awkwardly, looking at the fishing rod between his legs. Heeseung remains quiet when Riki doesnât prod him further and looks back at the water in front of him. Even in the forced proximity, you still canât figure out why he chooses to be avoidant.Â
Heeseung, on the other hand, finds that thereâs much to contemplate about. His life has barely begun and yet he feels the weight of his future hanging in the balance. Heâs just moved into his first apartment and will need to furnish it when he gets back from the camping trip. Heâs got a mattress with no bed frame and a single loveseat his parents gave him. Aside from his gaming setup, Heeseungâs one bedroom apartment is completely bare.Â
Looking at it makes him worry for his future and being around you. You, someone heâs always assumed had it easy because you were academically gifted, makes Heeseung feel like heâs got to step up his game. He hasnât liked you ever since high school for reasons he justifies as perfectly valid. But high school was years ago and some of his anger has subsided. All thatâs left is a faint annoyance and he'd rather be anywhere than next to you. He only said yes to this trip because of the other people who were going as well.Â
Heâs kept his feelings simmering beneath the surface and chooses to focus on anything but you when he hears you talk. Itâs frustrating enough knowing you share a lot of mutual friends, even worse when some of his best friends are people you consider family. He hates that Jake is comfortable enough to hang out with you without anyone else present and loathes that Sunghoon actively wants to become closer to you after he realized the two of you share the same taste in cinema. He especially despises the fact that Riki looks up to you even though, in Heeseungâs eyes, youâve done nothing to earn it.Â
The young teenager met the eldest of the bunch at a bonfire the third time he came to Korea after your mom had forced you to bring him along. You told him absolutely no alcohol no matter if anyone else was going to be drinking and to say no if your friends offered him a beer. He watched you that night, the way you periodically looked at your half-brother but made a lame attempt to include him in conversation. Riki found fast friends in Sunoo and Jungwon after messing around in the shallow waters of the ocean. Heeseung decided that you didnât deserve that type of respect from Riki at that moment.Â
Itâs been years since then and heâs seen the two of you grow, albeit slowly. Even in his blind hatred for your existence, Heeseung has always wondered why Riki vies for your attention. In fact, what is it about you that makes everybody fawn over you? Why do you always seem to be the center of attention? Does nobody care about what you did to him all those years ago?
It keeps him up at night to know that nobody around him understands why heâs so angry at you. Above the root cause, you have everything you could ever want. You were the smartest girl in high school and university, and it was no question about what your future would look like. Youâd accepted a job opportunity right after graduating and it seemed as though things were merely handed to you without you working that hard for it. You didnât have to ask for anything. It always seemed as though people could read your mind and always gave you what you wanted.Â
Maybe coming to the camping trip was a mistake. Heâs been walking on eggshells around you this entire time and feels like heâs suffocating every time his friends laugh at your jokes. Heeseung bites his tongue when he feels himself getting worked up and finds that nothing can get his mind off of you no matter how hard he tries.Â
He wonders if you remember that day all those years ago. He wonders if you know just how hurtful words can be and how awful it is to be on the receiving end of utter despair and desperation. Heeseung has always known you to be somebody who knows exactly what you want, too. Teenage angst never stopped you from pursuing higher education. It seemed like you threw everything you had into academics and everyone rewarding you for it made Heeseung want to crumble. Nobody else thought of you the way he did.Â
But this is something heâd rather keep to himself. For as much as he refuses to be your friend, he knows nothing good will ever come out of trying to convince everyone you arenât someone who they should be friends with. After all, youâll be working in Okayama and with any luck, youâll make a permanent residence out of Japan.Â
Heeseung is distracted from his thoughts when Riki manages to catch a rather large fish. With your help, heâs able to reel it in and watches the younger boy become awestruck at its sheer size. Heeseung watches you congratulating Riki and celebrates this excitement with him as you put the fish in the bucket for safe keeping. It should warm his heart to see a friend of his so happy, but seeing you smiling next to him makes Heeseung feel all the more irritated. The three of you head back to the dock after another couple of hours and a few more dishes later.
Jungwon catches more fish than you do. All eight of you manage to acquire enough for dinner and breakfast in the morning. Jay and Jake have volunteered to help with cooking while the rest of you prepare side dishes and talk about fishing adventures from your time apart. You smile at the group halfway through the conversation, fondness blooming in your chest when everybody is laughing after having eaten dinner.Â
âGod, I swear I almost fell into the water trying to wrestle with the trout!â Jake shouts amongst the chaotic laughter. âIt felt like I was about to become one with the fish.âÂ
âI almost pushed his ass into the lake,â Jay snorts. âIt was so fucking funny.â
âIâm surprised Sunoo caught the most fish out of all of us.â Jungwon shrugs and bites into his sâmore.Â
âYouâre telling me,â Sunoo replies as he wipes chocolate from his lip. âThatâs my quota for this trip, though. Donât expect me to go fishing again.âÂ
âIâm not ready for this trip to end,â Riki says with a mixed sigh. âWeâve already been here for a couple of days and it feels like time is going by so fast.âÂ
âI start that consulting job the Monday we go back and Iâm excited for it, but Iâm also nervous. It hit me on the way back from the lake.â Jay rubs his face with his hands. âThis adult shit is scary, man.â
âDo you guys remember when we were all freshmen and had that awful orientation leader?â Heeseung asks. Those who were in the same year as him nod. âThat felt like just yesterday and now weâre about to be real adults.â
âJayâs going to become a financial consultant, youâre working at a record label, Sunghoonâs going to open up his own cafe someday, and Iâm about to start a fellowship at a research lab.â Jake shakes his head like he canât believe it. âNot to mention Y/Nâs moving to Japan for work. If you told me four years ago we would talk about the future like this, I wouldâve laughed.âÂ
âIt feels a bit weird knowing we arenât going back to school.â Sunghoon looks at the younger boys and laughs. âWell, sorry to you guys.âÂ
Sunoo speaks up with a pout. âItâll be weird not seeing you guys around campus. Iâll miss running into you on my way to class.âÂ
âSometimes I wish we could stay in college forever.â Jay reaches over and picks out another marshmallow to put on his stick. âIt sucked ass but it was nice living close to you guys.â
âIâm scared to go out there alone.â You tug at the zipper on your jacket and stare at your hands. âI feel like Iâm going to mess everything up and fail. Iâll come home and have nothing to show for myself.âÂ
âCouldnât have said it any better.â Sunghoon finishes off his sâmore and wipes the crumbs off of his lap. âI wish everything was simple and easy. We really had it good back then, didnât we?â
âDonât get too caught up in growing up too fast,â Jake says as he pinches Rikiâs cheeks for dramatic effect. The latter tries to dodge his touch but fails. He points to Jungwon and Sunoo. âYou guys need to make every minute count.â
Jungwon laughs. âYou sound like a Hallmark card.â
âYeah, but one day youâll be saying the same thing. Youâll go back to campus and you wonât see us walking around.â Jungwon remains quiet after that.Â
âYouâll all be fine.â Sunoo nods once and it feels like heâs smiling at everyone individually through the fire. âLife is scary but thereâs a reason why we believe in you.â
Jay nudges Sunoo with his knee. âSince when did you get so wise?â
âYou could learn a thing or two from me.â
The tension dissipates. Everyone finishes up their desserts and helps tidy up the campsite. Jake and Sunghoon put out the fire while the rest of you put the chairs away and throw out any leftover trash in the nearby garbage bin. One by one, the eight of you start to grow sleepier as time ticks by. You all let your younger friends wash up first as you stifle yawns and prepare your makeshift bedding while you wait.Â
It feels like forever to wait with Heeseung close to you. Everybody else bids you goodnight as you brush your teeth in the wash station and rinse your face of dirt and debris from earlier in the day. Heeseung is standing just a few feet away as he waits for you to finish up but knowing heâs watching you makes your heart rate increase. Your hands tremble as you turn the faucet off and itâs just your luck that you trip over yourself and hold onto Heeseung when you turn around to exit the washroom.Â
âWatch where youâre going, Y/N,â Heeseung snaps. He shrugs your hands off of him and pushes you away from his body.Â
âWhat the fuck is your problem with me?â If Heeseung is surprised by your sudden outburst, he doesnât show it. Your typically calm, non-confrontational demeanor is nowhere to be seen.Â
âWhy canât you walk properly?â he mocks.Â
âYou have been so passive aggressive towards me this entire trip. Hell, youâve been that way since we were in high school. What the fuck is your deal and why canât you man up and tell me why you hate me so much?âÂ
His expression sours. âYou have some nerve asking me that.âÂ
âWhy?! You wonât tell me what your deal is and I canât fix it if you donât communicate that with me. We have so many mutual friends who want us to get along and itâs fine if weâll never be friends, but really, Heeseung, youâre acting like a child.âÂ
Heeseungâs nostrils flare and it feels demeaning the way he has to look you down in order to meet your eyes. The twinge in your heart flares when he makes no effort to talk to you further. The tension in his shoulders rises and falls with every second that passes by and youâre starting to wonder if thereâs any way you can leave the trip early.Â
He doesnât say anything, though. Heeseung pulls away from you and enters the washroom, leaving you alone with your thoughts and the sound of water running. Years of pushing aside your feelings for the greater good of preserving the peace feels like theyâre suffocating you with every step you take as you talk back to your tent. The cold chill of the night bristles through your hair and your watery eyes make you stumble before unzipping your makeshift bedroom.Â
âY/N?â Jungwon asks, half-asleep. He sees you wipe your eyes as you turn away from him and put away your dirty clothes and toiletries. âWhatâs wrong?âÂ
âNothing.âÂ
He pushes himself up and hears the clip in your tone. With his eyes softening, Jungwon gently touches your shoulder and realizes that your eyes are red before you shut your flashlight off. âCome here.âÂ
Itâs somewhere between a command and a plea. Jungwon doesnât force you to speak as he pulls your body into his. He doesnât care that your tears are falling onto his arm and he doesnât mind that youâve settled your weight onto his chest. Your silent hiccups make his heart lurch and the best he can do is let you cling onto him in your time of need.Â
You donât get like this often. The last time he remembers you letting him hold you like this was a few days after your parentsâ divorce had been finalized. The tangerine-shaped pillow you had was the only thing keeping Jungwonâs back from aching as you spent what felt like hours sobbing between his arms, dirtying his shirt with your hot tears. His heart broke back then, too. Heâs not used to seeing you without a smile on your face and every crack in your demeanor lets him know youâre a dam thatâs about to burst.Â
It canât be easy to live knowing your father willingly left and chose to leave you behind. Nearly two decades of saying âI love youâ and championing his only daughter to be the best version of herself felt like it was all for naught the night he told you he wouldnât be living with you anymore. You could barely stand watching him pack his belongings and take everything valuable with him. You were unusually quiet during this period of time, too scared to make a sound and make things worse than they already were.Â
Jungwon knows you keep your heart locked away in a cage these days. Your friends know you like the back of their hands but itâs been getting harder and harder to coax you out of your shell. He knows it hasnât been easy with Heeseung within your main friend group and wishes he could do more to quell your anxieties about spending time with him, even if your other friends are there to shield you from his silent torment.Â
Your best friend softens a bit when you cling onto his arm, holding him like heâs your lifeline. He pushes his fingers through your hair the way heâs seen your mom do countless times and rocks your body back and forth until youâve started to calm down. He hears your shallow breaths and holds onto you for the fear that youâll think he doesnât want to comfort you if he lets you go.Â
âSorry.â Your voice is brittle and it makes his heart break.Â
âYou never have to be sorry, Bug. Are you okay?â You shake your head. âIs it something one of us did?â You nod. âWas it Heeseung?â He hates that you start to tear up again. âIâm sorry, Bug. Iâm so sorry.â
âI donât understand why he doesnât like me,â you hiccup. âI donât know what I did. How can I apologize when I donât know what Iâve done?âÂ
Jungwon sighs. Heâs with you on this one. âYouâre right. I donât know whatâs gotten into him recently but Iâm fed up with it too.âÂ
âWe donât need to be friends but I want him to stop pretending like I ruined his life.â Your best friend nods against you and pushes his cheek against the crown of your head. âSorry that I woke you up. I feel like a mess.â
âYouâre not a mess, Bug. Youâve been tied together with a smile for so long. Itâs only natural that you break down every once in a while.â
âYouâre very smart, Wonnie.âÂ
He laughs. âI know. Do you want to cry some more or go to sleep?â Jungwonâs tone lacks any humor tonight. Heâs concerned about you in a way that makes you feel like a porcelain doll and while you appreciate it when he pokes fun at you to show how comfortable he is with you, this feels just as nice.Â
âIâm ready to sleep.âÂ
You pull away from him and settle in your sleeping bag, welcoming the calmness that washes over you. Jungwon chooses to stay up just a smidge longer until heâs certain that youâre asleep before he closes his eyes, wishing for better days ahead of you.
***
The trees always seemed taller when you were younger. They stretched for miles and touched the sky from your point of view, almost as if they could reach the heavens above. You always wondered what it must be like to have lived as long as nature around you. The leaves and branches see all walks of life, from humans to animals, and keep many secrets hidden underneath its shaded areas. It almost feels like they whisper stories back to you when the wind shakes the weakest branches. You always try to listen.Â
When you find yourself hiking on another path around the lake, it becomes easier for you to clear your mind and think about all that lies before you. The sounds of birds chirping amongst the blue sky make the environment around you seem picturesque. In all of your ears camping here, you donât think youâve ever appreciated it the way you are at this very moment.Â
Your friends are scattered in front and behind you, each of them wrapped up in their own conversations. You can feel Jungwon look at you periodically but you silently let him know that youâre doing alright. He worries about you a lot and he has every reason to. Sometimes, you wonder if any part of you is holding him back because he spends so much time looking after you. It used to be the other way around with you watching after him at playgrounds and on your walk home from school. But with your father leaving as soon as you started trying to figure out who you were, it was like a switch had flipped.Â
Your best friend has had a few girlfriends here and there but none of them ever lasted long. He reminds you that heâs young and isnât looking for a life partner at this stage in his life, but you know he worries about you ever since the news of your dad leaving and Riki entering your life turned your world upside down. You wonder if youâre causing him too much stress.Â
He always reminds you that youâre the reason he has so many people that he loves. You introduced him to the majority of your friends on this camping trip. You were the one who introduced him to his first girlfriend and why he finds so much hope in all of the small things. Jungwon admires your resilience and ability to stand on your feet after youâve been knocked to the ground by an unseen force. Your tenacity pushes him to be a better person towards others and to himself, and heâll remind you every chance he gets. Jungwon believes that youâre okay for now. You know heâll be there to pick up the pieces if you need him to.
It brings you back to your future and how Jungwon wonât be physically present when you move to Japan. Youâve spent so much time with him and it made you happy when he was accepted into his bachelor program at your university. The two of you have always been close, whether it was because neither of you had siblings and found solace in each another or because of forced proximity from being neighbors, you donât know. It feels like youâll be saying goodbye to somebody who youâve always leaned on. It feels like youâre leaving him the way your dad left you.Â
Dealing with the overwhelming guilt of moving to Okayama, the city your father moved to when he left you and your mom, digs a hole deep inside of your chest every time you think about it. Itâs probably why you push off discussions about moving whenever you can and change the subject when other people bring it up. You try not to get too irritated whenever your mom talks to you about packing and everything else thatâs important when settling in a new country, like a work visa or financial burdens. But every conversation with her about your eventual move feels like a million needles are slowly pricking your skin. Every step feels heavier than the next.Â
Thereâs Heeseung, too, who has been plaguing your mind ever since you awoke. Itâs not unlike him to be cold towards you. In fact, youâve dealt with tuning him out and learned to ignore his quiet scoffs, paying attention to anyone who would give you some of their attention. The accumulation of life stress and the inevitable move has made it so your heart rate canât seem to be still at any time in the day. Heeseung doesnât make it any better by snapping at you for treading carefully. This feeling reminds you of the time you tiptoed around your father when you found out about his infidelity being the reason why he chose to leave you and your mother for Okayama. It feels like anticipating a bomb going off. Itâs never a matter of if, but when.Â
You donât remember when things changed but you remember it was abrupt and unannounced. One day, the two of you were laughing with bologna sandwiches for lunch and the next, Heeseung was ignoring you like the two of you had never been friends. His stare was just as cold as his tone when speaking. You could never catch his eye when you were with your group of friends and he refused to be alone with you. The hurt that came with his actions felt like a punch in the gut with all you were dealing with back home.Â
The reason why it was easy to tune out his friendship was purely because of prioritization. Dealing with empty rooms and the house feeling like a ghost was haunting the walls was by far a greater sadness than losing a friend. But even so, seeing Heeseung laugh with your friends and watching him excel in everything you used to support him in made you feel like you were being left behind. It hurt to attend his basketball games because he no longer looked for your eyes in the stands. He didnât acknowledge you when your group of friends would head to the nearby diner for a celebratory meal, and he didnât call you to say goodnight and to thank you for coming to his games and open practices anymore.Â
The ghost of your friendship lingered over you like an unwanted guest. It followed you into university after you committed to the same one and it seemed like neither of you could escape one another. Seeing him live a life that you werenât a part of made your reality sink inâthe few years he spent distancing himself from you wasnât merely a fluke or teenage angst. Heeseung wanted nothing to do with you. You had to learn how to be okay with that.Â
Still, you wish you were as tall as the trees around you. Maybe then Heeseung would tell you why he didnât like you anymore.Â
âY/N, watch out!âÂ
The warning nearly comes too late. You donât register a hissing sound until you see a reflection of scales and stumble backwards into somebody who seems to be caught off guard as much as you are. Jakeâs warning saved you from a nasty bite from a snake that has slithered away back between the trees but your heart stammers in your chest as you curl yourself further deeper into the person behind you.Â
You hate snakes. Youâre petrified of themÂ
Heeseung, to his misfortune, is the person youâve bumped into. He saw the snake just before Jake said his warning and felt his body freeze in the way yours didnât. He didnât have time to move aside and let Sunoo, who he was talking to, move to grab your body and pull you out of harmâs way. He feels your beating chest against his and looks down at you. Heeseung doesnât think heâs ever seen you like this before. It makes his stomach fall.Â
âY/N is really scared of snakes,â Jungwon says as he walks up to the two of you, offering a quick explanation before Heeseung could say anything about you clinging onto him. âShe got bit by one as a kid and it scared her pretty bad.â Heeseung doesnât push you away. Instead, he lets Jungwon pry you off of his body until youâre able to blink and come to your senses.Â
âSorry.â You throw an apology his way when Jungwon rubs your back. The rest of your friends, who seem to know about your fear, try to give you some space instead of crowding around you. A part of him wants to scoff. The other part of him feels bad for you. It almost makes him feel guilty for being so short with you last night.
âWeâre almost at the end of the trail anyway,â Jungwon says. âLetâs finish it and get some lunch.âÂ
When you all arrive back at the campsite, Jake pulls your water bottle out of your backpack and stands with you while Jungwon lets you stand right beside him in an attempt to calm yourself down. Jay and Sunghoon, not wanting to impede and make things uncomfortable, decide to go on another short hike and let you rest. The sight is a bit unnerving for Heeseung, who has generally only ever thought of you as this self righteous, confident person, to see you in such a state of shock that you could barely look him in the eye like you did the night before. Heâs used to you avoiding and ignoring him but he isnât accustomed to you scurrying away from anything or anyone.Â
Heâs a bit confused as to why he feels a little guilty for how he spoke to you last night. You were his friend before he decided you werenât and that feeling of concern is starting to creep back in. Heeseung watches the way you flinch when Jake tries to rub your shoulder and how Jungwon is the only person who seems to know how to get you to relax after the snake incident.Â
âIs she really that scared of snakes?â Heeseung asks Sunoo, who stands away from you to give you space. He pretends to be busy picking at his nails to let you have peace and not make you feel overcrowded with two of your friends already by your side.Â
âIf I tell you, are you going to use that against her?â Sunoo doesnât typically question Heeseung like this. It startles him but he shakes his head anyway.Â
âNo,â says Heeseung. âIâm not. Iâve never seen her act like that.â
Sunoo must think the elder is telling the truth. âWhen Y/N was very young, a snake bit her ankle when her parents werenât looking. She got scared and tripped over a rock or something, and her entire leg started to bleed and got a pretty bad gash from it. They rushed her to the emergency room and panicked because her leg was covered in blood.â
âThatâs it?â
Sunoo glares at Heeseung. âIt might not seem like a big deal to you, but that kind of stuff leaves an impression on you when youâre a kid, Heeseung. Sheâs been pretty terrified of snakes and blood ever since.âÂ
âHuh. I never knew that.â
âDonât go barking up that tree. Itâs bad enough that you hate her for no good reason.âÂ
Heeseung looks at Sunoo quizzically when he hears his friendâs harsh tone. âWhatâs the matter with you?âÂ
Sunoo scoffs. âMe? Whatâs the matter with you? I heard you and Y/N last night. You were an ass to her. Sheâs right, too. How can she apologize for hurting you if you never talk about what she did?Â
âSunooââ
âSave it, Heeseung.â He straightens his posture. âYouâre my friend and I love you, but youâve been really harsh on Y/N for the past few years. I thought the two of you drifted apart but you clearly have a vendetta against her.â
âI do not have a vendetta against Y/N.â Â
âSure. Whatever you say. Just remember that Y/Nâs the reason why youâre on this trip. One veto from her and Jungwon wouldâve kicked your ass to the curb. Youâre lucky she doesnât say this shit to anyone.âÂ
Heeseung looks at his shoes, feeling the heat in his body creep up his neck. He knows Sunooâs somewhat right. Youâre half the reason why this trip exists at all. Even if Jungwon brought the friend group along, itâs you who this campaign tradition belongs to as well. Heeseung bites his tongue and tries his best not to argue with Sunoo. Deep down, the elder knows that heâs been a bit harsh to you and sometimes finds himself regretting the venom he aims directly at you. But then he remembers that incident from all those years ago and feels his anger bubble up inside of him. He pulls his friend away so that none of you hear him.Â
âI have a reason not to like her okay?â Heeseung whispers through his teeth.Â
âWhat reason could you possibly have that justifies how shitty youâve been?â
Heeseung looks around like heâs afraid someoneâs listening in. âSecond semester, sophomore year of high school. You and Jake were with me doing homework right outside the front gate. We were waiting for my brother to pick us up from school when Y/N told Kim Chaewon that I would never amount to anything because I didnât have any talent and had to flirt with girls to get them to listen to my music.â
Sunoo looks at Heeseung like heâs sprouted a second head, who looks at the younger boy like heâs waiting for confirmation or validation of sorts with his eyebrows raised as if expecting a certain outcome. Instead, Sunoo slaps him on the back of his head with his palm and scowls.Â
âYou are so stupid, Heeseung.â
âWhat the fuck did I do?!â Heeseung soothes the spot where Sunoo hit him. âIt was messed up for her to say that. Why are you calling me stupid?â
âY/N didnât say that about you. Chaewon did.âÂ
Heeseungâs eyes grow comically wide. âI know what I heard.âÂ
âNo, you donât. I remember the moment youâre talking about. You left so fast and didnât stop when Jake and I called out for you. Chaewon couldn't get another word out because Y/N tore her a new one. Why do you think they arenât friends anymore?âÂ
âWellâŠBecause Y/N said that about me. Chaewon was my friend, too.âÂ
Sunoo shakes his head. âChaewon said that about you. Not Y/N.â
âThatâs not possibleâŠâ
âHow would you know? You werenât there. You left before you could hear the full argument.âÂ
âSunoo,â Heeseung says, voice quivering from a mixture of guilt and embarrassment. âPlease tell me thatâs not true.âÂ
âDo you know how stupid you look knowing you blew off Y/N, the person who defended you, and still talked to Chaewon?â Sunoo shakes his head at Heeseung. âYou ended your longest friendship over a misunderstanding and then got closer with the person who actually said those things about you. Imagine how Y/N mustâve felt.âÂ
Heeseungâs mind starts to recount the days after your argument with Chaewon and how heâd gone out of his way to ignore you in the aftermath. He never gave you an explanation about his absence and why he pulled away, citing that incident as the reason why you didnât deserve to know in the first place. He thinks about Chaewon and how he didnât think twice about it because his mind had already been made up. He was still friends with Chaewon, taking pictures with her at parties and talking to her whenever their friend groups hung out together. Not once did he spare a glance to you.Â
As his mind starts to wander into nostalgic territory, Heeseung feels his stomach plummet. The sudden urge to rectify his actions overwhelms him and heâs fighting tooth and nail not to cry on the spot.Â
When he looks at you now, quiet and hidden within your shared friends, Heeseung canât help but feel a bit guilty. He suddenly remembers the few moments where you showed a vulnerable side of yourself and allowed him to see you cry after a bad grade or when your middle school friends were being mean towards you. Heeseung recalls all the times heâs ever thought of you as somebody who puts on a brave face and stands back up after feeling the weight of the world crush you to the ground. He thinks about all of the times heâs ever made you feel insignificant to him and feels pins and needles in his footsteps. Heeseung finds himself walking towards you as heâs contemplating his feelings and Jungwon guards you, pushing you behind him.Â
âHey,â Heeseung says awkwardly. He tries to peek at you but doesnât like seeing you look so helpless. Pathetically, he offers a meek apology. âSorry about the snake.âÂ
âItâs fine. Sorry I grabbed you.â For the first time in a long time, Heeseung doesnât feel annoyed by the thought of you latching onto him.Â
âItâs okay. I, uhâŠwanted to know if you were fine.â Heeseung clears his throat. âIs there anything I can do?â His unfamiliar kindness confuses you and it confuses Jungwon too.
âYou know, maybe it would be a good idea if you left the campsite for a while,â Jake suggests from beside Heeseung. âYouâre a bit shaken up and you could probably use a change of scenery.âÂ
âThatâs not a bad idea, actually,â Jungwon agrees. âYou could leave for a few hours and come back once youâve calmed down, Bug.âÂ
You pick at your fingernails. âI feel so stupid for being so scared.â
âItâs not stupid, Y/N.â Jake tilts his head and looks at you with a pout. âItâs something youâre scared of and with good reason. I wouldâve been scared shitless if it was closer to me.â
âYou could go into town and get some ice cream,â says Jungwon. âYou should go to the beach by the highway for a little bit and get your mind off of it.âÂ
âI-I donât really want to go alone.â
Heeseung speaks before he can even think about what heâs saying.
âIâll go with you.â Jungwon and Jake whip their head to their friend.Â
âHeeseungââ
âI can drive us,â he says, mouth moving faster than his brain. âI wonât say anything, I swear. Iâll take her to the beach and ice cream if she wants to.âÂ
Jungwon hesitantly looks at Heeseung. âAreâŠAre you sure?âÂ
âYeah.â He lies straight through his teeth. He doesnât know if he can sit with you when his whole life has been turned upside down. But itâs too late to backtrack. âIâve been feeling a little restless here anyway.âÂ
âI donât knowâŠâ
âJay isnât here and he has his keys.â Jake looks at you and nudges your shoulder. âWhat do you want to do, Y/N?âÂ
You look up at Heeseung for the first time and he sucks in a breath. Itâs like youâre devoid of yourself, fear and anxiety clouding your eyes like youâre petrified to even speak. He watches you lick your lips slowly as if contemplating carefully. âI want to go.â
âBug, you donât have to.â
âI know, Wonnie.â You touch his arm and he relents. âI think I need to leave for a little bit and calm down. I should walk on the beach, or something.â
âI can come with you guys.â Riki, who has been silent during this ordeal, speaks up and appears to the other side of Heeseung. âI saw the beach just before we got here. It looks pretty.âÂ
âThatâs a good idea,â Jake nods, looking at you. He softens his tone. âWould that be alright with you?âÂ
You hum .âMhm. Yeah, thatâs fine. Let me get my wallet.âÂ
When you leave for your tent, Jungwon looks at Heeseung and stares at him with an expression he canât read. The silence is deafening and he awkwardly coughs, looking away from his younger friend.Â
âDonât fuck this up,â says Jungwon with a clipped tone. âYouâve been a dipshit and sheâs been putting up with it for the sake of everybody else. The last thing she needs is for you to make fun of her and make her feel even worse than she already does.âÂ
âI wonât, Jungwon. I swear.âÂ
âIâm choosing to trust you because youâre my friend too, despite everything you feel towards Y/N.â He nods at Riki. âYou, keep an eye out for them.â
âI wonât do or say anything,â Heeseung promises for a second time. You come back a moment later, oblivious to the tension.Â
âBe safe, yeah?â Heeseung hears the change in Jungwonâs tone when talking to you. âCall me if you need anything. Your phoneâs charged from the portable, right?â
âYeah.â You hold up your phone to show him. âIâll let you know when weâre coming back.âÂ
The beach itself is nestled towards the end of the highway where the sand meets the trees. The small shops around it bring a sense of nostalgia, especially when Heeseung parks in front of a large, tattered orange sign that says âICE CREAM SOLD HERE.â The three of you walk inside and Heeseung watches you look over the flavors.Â
âThey change the flavors all the time based on the season,â you say absentmindedly. The three of you are the only customers and he figures the employee must be in the back.Â
Itâs a bit strange to be spending time with you apart from everybody else. Even though Rikiâs accompanying the two of you, he hasn't been alone with you like this in years. You seem to be doing a little better with distance put between you and the campsite. Heeseung hopes the drive wasnât too terrible. His knuckles turned white with the grip he had on the steering wheel, too afraid to look into the rearview mirror for the fear of catching your eye. He wonders if youâd be able to read his mind in the way you once did.Â
You make small talk with the owner of the shop who recognizes you before ordering. Riki and Heeseung follow too, the youngest trying a few flavors before settling on one. You go to pay for your own until Riki pulls out his wallet and pays for the both of you. Heeseung watches the two of you argue before the owner accepts Rikiâs card. Heâs pulled out of his thoughts before paying for his own cup.Â
The beach is right next door and the three of you leave your shoes inside Heeseungâs trunk before stepping onto the warm sand. The sunâs high in the sky and Heeseungâs grateful that he chose to put on extra sunblock before leaving his tent. Riki follows you towards the water. He chooses to stay behind and give you both space even though his heart is telling him not to.Â
Heeseung has always believed in telling the truth because itâll always see the light at the end of the day. Heâs a fan of honesty and itâs something he values in all of his friends. He thought heâd found that in you ever since the day the two of you started becoming friends and felt his world shatter around him when he thought you were making fun of his aspirations to become a music producer. Youâd spent countless hours in his bedroom with him as he learned how to use proper equipment and went so far as to buy him a few things here and there disguised as birthday and Christmas gifts. You spent so much time listening to him grow as a musician in the comfort of his bedroom. The thought that you were pretending to care about him made Heeseung feel sick to his stomach. It wasn't hard for him to cut you off when he thought you betrayed him.
But now, life feels like itâs at a stand still. You stand before him and Heeseungâs throat closes up like heâs lost the ability to breathe. You might not even know that youâre the reason for his inner turmoil. You probably donât care. Why would you when heâs pushed you so far from armâs length? Heeseung sighs to himself and replays every single interaction heâs ever had with you after deciding to cut you out of his life. The guilt piles up on him before he can stop it from stacking until it eventually makes his skin feel like itâs been set on fire. Heâll have to sit with the fact that heâs made you out to be a cruel, terrible friend instead of the person who would defend him to hell and back.
What must you think of him now? For a long time, it took Heeseung great strength to push you into the far corners of his mind and stop seeking you out whenever you were near him. He trained himself to look away from you, the weight of your alleged words playing in the back of his mind whenever he felt the urge to talk to you like old times. Heeseung stopped communicating with you altogether, unfollowing you on all of your social media and physically removing you out of his life so he wouldnât have to see your face when he least expected it.Â
But now it feels like the last six years of his life have been a lie. Heâs been living in his own world, wrapped up in a delusion that only he was able to clearly see. The memory was too painful to say out loud let alone tell a soul. Heeseung kept his heart guarded and offered a brief explanation whenever your mutual friends asked why the two of you werenât close anymore and heâd shut you down if you tried to talk to him until your efforts ceased.Â
When he looks at you now, all he feels is regret.Â
Riki walks back towards Heeseung, whoâs perched on a bench right on the sand. His ice cream is discarded in the nearby trash can and Riki eats whateverâs left in his cup before tossing it away. The two of them sit in silence. Riki basks in the salt air and relishes in the sound of birds chirping and waves crashing onto the shore. Heeseung can only hear his heart beating in his ears.Â
âSheâs doing okay,â Riki says, breaking the silence. âI think her shock and adrenaline are wearing off.âÂ
âGood,â Heeseung nods. âThatâs really good.âÂ
âI could tell she wanted to be left alone after a little while. I hope sheâll be fine when we go back.âÂ
âIâm sure she will be.âÂ
Riki nods and looks back at you. âHave you ever seen her get like that?âÂ
âMaybe once or twice. We stopped being close in high school.âÂ
âOh, yeah. Right.âÂ
âBut she always bounced back,â Heeseung adds quickly. âLike you said, sheâll be fine.â
âI didnât even know she was scared of snakes.âÂ
Heeseung laughs. âMe either.â The silence permeates until Heeseung speaks again. âCan I ask you a question?âÂ
âSince when have you ever asked me if you could ask me something?âÂ
âFair point.â Heeseung rubs his palms against his thighs. âI donât really know where to start.â
âThe beginning is usually the best place.âÂ
âYou know how I feel about Y/N. How I felt about her. I told you so many times to stop expecting people to treat you the way you want to be treated if they didnât put in the effort to make you feel welcomed.â Heeseung looks at the younger boy. âWhy did you keep defending?âÂ
âAre you asking me because youâre worried about Y/N or because you have some weird thing with her?âÂ
âIâm asking because Iâm starting to think I was wrong about her.â Riki must think Heeseung is telling the truth because he nods after a moment.Â
âHow much do you know about Y/Nâs family life?â
âI know she has a mom and that Jungwonâs parents are like her own. I also know her parents got divorced and that her dad left just before she graduated high school.âÂ
âRight.â Riki coughs nervously. âHow much do you know about our relationship?âÂ
âYou two are half-siblings.âÂ
âThatâs all?âÂ
Heeseung shrugs. âI never questioned it.âÂ
âOkay, yeah. That makes sense.â Riki looks down at his lap like heâs trying to figure out what to say. âI donât really know if this is my place to say it but I want you to know so you can stop thinking Y/Nâs the Devil.âÂ
âI donât think sheâs the Devil.âÂ
Riki chuckles. âSure. To put it simply, she's my half-sister because her dad cheated on her mom with mine. Heâd go on business trips to Japan a few times a year and they hit it off after they met. One thing led to another and they started meeting up whenever he was back in town.Â
âThey had me a year after they first started their affair and I guess he was able to keep his life in Japan a secret until Y/N found pictures on her dadâs laptop. She saw pictures of us on vacations when her dad was supposed to be on work trips. I think she told her mom about it and thatâs around the time I found out he had another family too.âÂ
âWhat was going through your head back then?âÂ
âWell, my mom told me my dad had to live in Korea for work. I believed it until I was seven, maybe? Iâd always ask her questions as I got older but she either brushed me off or told me things that didnât add up. Heâd come more frequently the older I got. We didnât talk on the phone much when he was over in Korea, though, so seeing him in person used to be extra special.Â
âThen I found out that he had an affair because he came to live with us full time when I was twelve. My mom told me everything when he moved in and I felt like my entire life was a lie. I couldnât look at either of them the same.âÂ
âWowâŠI canât imagine going through that.â Heeseungâs words hang in the air.Â
âYeah. It was hard. I hated Y/N for a while. I hated that she got to see my dad more than I did when I found out. My friends used to make fun of me because he wasnât around for my dance competitions and showcases. I always defended him and said he was working in Korea to make a better life for us. Itâs what I believed at the time.âÂ
âAnd your mom let you believe all of that?â
Riki shrugs. âI guess so. She hated Y/N and her mom. She always talked down on them when my dad moved in and I felt that my anger was justified too. My mom hated the fact that my dad still wanted to keep Y/N in his life and wouldnât fully abandon her the way he did hid with his ex-wife. Some of his paycheck would go towards Y/Nâs college fund and my mom tried everything in her power to stop him from giving her money but he gave her an ultimatum, so she stopped complaining.Â
âHe took me to Korea once. I was fourteen, I think. I met my dadâs parents and we stayed with them for a while. I donât know why he took me there since I could barely speak the language but he said he wanted me to get to know where he grew up and integrate myself in the culture since he was trying to be a present father. That was the first time I met Y/N. I had my mind made up and decided I hated her the first time I saw her. She couldnât have been older than seventeen. I hated that she looked just like me.Â
âWhen we met for the first time, we didnât really get along. Both of us didnât talk and our dad tried so hard to form a bond between us but it didnât work. I didnât want anything to do with her because all I could think about was how she got to spend so much time with him while I only got to see him for a week or so a few times a year.âÂ
âWhat made you change your mind?â Heeseung asks.Â
âWhen we got back to Japan, my mom kept saying all of these mean things about Y/N and her family,â Riki continues. âI wasnât her biggest fan but the stuff she was saying was cruel and untrue. I knew it was pure jealousy and realized that my mom helped break up a perfectly good family. I mean, I knew it was my dadâs fault for cheating on his wife and leaving Y/N also, but coming to that realization made me think about how Y/N mustâve felt when she found out.â
âWowâŠI didnât know any of this.â
âAs far as I can tell, Jungwonâs the only person sheâs told.â Riki sighs and pushes his fingers through his hair. âAnyway, at that point, neither one of us cared to keep the relationship going. I didnât call her and she didnât call me. But the more my parents started living their lives like they hadnât made two people fall apart, the more I started to feel sorry for Y/N. I canât imagine finding out your dad cheated on your mom and then willingly left you for another family. Our dad brought me back to Korea a few times after that for winter and summer breaks to stay with his parents. He said he wanted me to experience life abroad. Heâd bring me to family events and I always felt so out of place.â
âWait, seriously?â Heeseung asks in disbelief.Â
âYeah, if you can believe it. I felt so guilty coming to these things. It was actually Y/Nâs mom who told her to start being more open to me. I canât explain how awful I felt when I realized she was making an effort to include me even though I was someone from her ex-husbandâs affair. When my dad was trying to get back in everyoneâs good graces, Y/Nâs mom was making sure I had enough food and water.
âI slowly started to realize that Y/N was hurting too. She had everything I wanted but it felt like I was the one who took that away from her. I thought, maybe if my mom wasnât pregnant with me, her dad wouldâve never continued the affair and she wouldâve never found out he cheated.â
âThatâs why you defend her, isnât it? Even when I thought she was being unfair?âÂ
Riki laughs. âYeah, man. Iâve known about her longer than sheâs known me and Iâve known about the affair longer than she has. Iâve had more time to get used to it. I donât blame her for pushing me away. If I found out I had a half-sibling because my dad cheated on my mom, I think Iâd react the same way.â Heeseungâs heart feels much heavier than it did prior to this conversation. âWeâve been getting better. She texts me first every now and then and she keeps up with my dancing stuff. Itâs not like weâre total strangers anymore. I mean, she likes me enough to let me be friends with you guys. Itâll just take some time.â
âDo you want her to be in your life? And do you want to be in hers?âÂ
Heeseung watches Riki nod without a second doubt. âAbsolutely. I love Y/N now. Sheâs my sister even if she only thinks of me as her half-brother. I know weâve had it rough in the past but she looks out for me. Y/Nâs smart and confident in all the ways I wish I could be. I love listening to her talk and I love learning new things about her. I always wished for a sibling and even though this isnât how I imagined it going, Iâm happy.âÂ
The two of them sit in another round of silence. Heeseung does his best to process everything Riki has just told him but it feels like thereâs too much information for him to digest all at once. He never knew any of this about you, too caught up in his own feelings about the misunderstanding. While he was giving you the cold shoulder, you were crumbling apart because your dad left for another family. If he knew any of this back then, Heeseung thinks he would be sympathetic. But he canât turn back the clock. He watches you stand by the water with your empty ice cream up in your hands and wonders what youâre thinking about.Â
âWait,â Heeseung says, cutting the silence for the umpteenth time. âYouâre from Okayama.â Riki nods. âYouâve lived in Okayama until you moved here.âÂ
âYeah, thatâs right.âÂ
âAnd Y/Nâs moving to Okayama for work.â Riki nods solemnly. âYouâre telling me Y/Nâs moving to the city your dad moved to when he left her?â The younger boy nods again. âShit.â
âWith everything going on in her life, I donât expect her to have it all figured out. Sure, it hurt when she didnât want to spend time with me but I donât think I can really be mad at her when this is how her life is. Okayama is a big city but the world is pretty small.â
âThatâs fucked up. Thatâs really, really fucked up.âÂ
âIâm pretty sure sheâs scared about running into our dad. Lord knows I came to study in Korea because I didnât want to be around him anymore,â Riki scoffs. âI know that I have my own shit to deal with and that Iâll probably need to find a therapist when I start school but for now, Iâll focus on Y/N. Iâm happy she let me come on this trip because I know how much camping with Jungwon means to her. I can somewhat empathize with her about moving to a place that didnât feel like home because of your dad.âÂ
Heeseung looks at Riki and doesnât expect him to look as tranquil as he does, but he looks at you like youâre the person giving him this grace and maturity. âFuck, Riki. Iâm really sorry that you had to deal with this. Do the other guys besides Jungwon know?â
âNot as much as you do, they just know something happened with my parents and thatâs why I donât want to go back to Okayama. I donât think Y/Nâs told anybody else, so please donât tell her you know.â
âI wonât,â Heeseung promises. âI swear on it.âÂ
âGood. I trust you and youâve been a good friend to me.âÂ
âSorry for giving you a hard time about her too.âÂ
âItâs fine now. JustâŠpromise me you wonât be so harsh on her. Sheâs been through a lot and I can tell sheâs really not happy about the move even though the job opportunity is really good for her career.âÂ
âOf course.âÂ
You walk back towards them and the two boys stand up and pretend as if they werenât speaking in depth about you. Heeseung, for the first time, smiles at you without restraint and it makes you feel confused as you shake off the sand and head back into his car.Â
On the entire drive back to the campsite, Heeseung lets Riki control the music and thinks about their previous conversation. He had no idea this is what you were dealing with and always thought you stopped talking to him because you didnât think it was worth being friends either. He doesnât remember much about the last few years of high school, apart from avoiding you when you were around, but now he wishes he wouldâve paid more attention. Even though whatâs past is past, Heeseung wishes he could turn back time and stop himself from making a false assumption.Â
He parks the car sooner than he realizes and Riki hands Heeseung back his phone. You step out of the car and look far better than you did before the impromptu trip. Heeseung canât help but jog after you.Â
âHey,â he calls out. Youâre pulled out of your thoughts when you hear his voice and look at him, perplexed. âAre you feeling better now?âÂ
âUm, yeah.â You look at Heeseung like you donât know what he wants from you and heâs starting to hate that heâs made you feel this way for so long.Â
âGood. Thatâs good.â Heeseung clears his throat. âI, uh, wanted to apologize for what I said to you last night. That was out of line. Iâm really sorry.â The gears turn in your head and he can see you processing his apology slowly.Â
âYeah, well, if you have a problem with me then you should either tell me why or leave me alone.â Your words lack any venom like they did last night but theyâre replaced with something more raw and callous. He almost wishes you would yell at him.Â
âI know.â He really does. âBut I really am sorry. For everything.â Heeseung canât find the words to elaborate how he feels, not when he sees your shared friends in front of him.Â
You look at him and he feels like you might as well be looking into his soul. Without another word, you leave him with his thoughts and rejoin the rest of the group.Â
***
Itâs nearing the end of the trip and Heeseung feels like he needs to get you alone to apologize for a million things. Guilt courses through his body when heâs awake and it only ceases when heâs asleep. He does his best to keep a straight face when heâs around everybody else and heâs sure theyâre all picking up on the fact that he hasnât been avoiding you like he did when you all first arrived.Â
But itâs hard to get you alone. He knows you likely wouldnât hear him out if he asked you to talk. Even so, he doesnât know if he knows everything he wants to say. Heeseung is sure everyone else will want to know why he asked to talk to you and make a big deal out of it too, but he canât say he blames them when heâs the one who has put so much tension between the two of you. Being nicer towards you with intention is not normal for Heeseung. He wishes that werenât the case.Â
Itâs a warm day outside and everybodyâs agreed to go kayaking in the lake. The water is calm and there are a few families and groups whoâve decided to do the same thing. Everybody fastens life vests and hops into their own kayak before setting out on the water.Â
Heeseung wants to enjoy being out on the water but his mind keeps coming back to you. He wonders deeply about the past he shares with you and what wouldâve been if he hadnât made those assumptions all those years ago. He knows heâs always been a bit too prideful for his own good, putting himself above the opinions of others without thinking twice. Heâs got tough skin and likes that heâs developed a sense of confidence and identity, especially because he wants to pursue a career in music, but now he wonders if heâs too confident.Â
The reason why your words hurt more than heâd care to admit is because he harbored a pathetic crush on you ever since you wrote him a letter for his thirteenth birthday. Heâd just gotten the hang of making music on GarageBand and by the time his birthday rolled around, Heeseung wanted to show some of his friends what heâd been learning after school. October came quickly and he invited his closest friends to his house for some cake and to jump in the large bouncy house his parents rented for him. The warm afternoon is forever etched into his memory because everyone Heeseung cared about in his first year being a teenager was there to support the beginning of his music interest.Â
Heeseung remembers the gift he unwrapped from you and your parents. It was a CD of his favorite album and one of those plastic statues with an award title etched into the base. It read âBEST MUSIC PRODUCERâ on it and Heeseung thought it was the best gift he received that year. What made that warm afternoon even more special was when you pulled him aside to give him a handwritten note. He remembers your shy voice telling him not to open it until everybody was gone and said you wanted to give the letter to him in private when nobody else was looking because your parents didnât know youâd done this. He kept that card on his desk until everybody left, promising to read it as soon as he was alone.Â
You wrote to his yearning heart, the side of him that wanted to make music so badly that heâd sit in his room until the late hour with a lamp shining over his desk to write songs until his hand hurt from holding his pen. Heeseung would hunch over his desk during school and scribble down lyrics in the margins of his assignments. It always felt like he was the only person who felt this way most times and felt like his peers couldnât understand why he loved making music so much. Reading your letter made Heeseung feel less alone, as if you were always watching over him and seeing his passion when he thought nobody else could.Â
That note alone solidified his blooming crush and suddenly, every love song he wrote was dedicated to you. Details about you were weaved into his songsâthe sound you made when you laughed, the stickers you used to collect, and the number on your childhood homeâit all became important to him. It was almost like Heeseung could talk to you through his music without saying a single word. He could let his songs do the talking for him.Â
Of course, thinking you were the one who said he didnât have any real talent made his hopes and dreams shatter into a million pieces. He always felt like your champion and that pursuing his passion wasnât so scary if he had you by his side. The world felt like it was crashing all around him to the point where he considered giving up on making music altogether. For that, he would never forgive you. But itâs different now. Heeseung knows youâre not to blame. The culpability doesnât lie on your shoulders, even if thatâs what Heeseung thought for all these years.Â
Heeseung roams around the lake in silence, letting the birds chirp uninterrupted. The sound of his boat sailing against the water beneath him does something to soothe his aching heart for the time being. He sees you not too far ahead with Sunghoon a bit behind you when he sees you reach for the paddle that fell from your grip. His heart stops when your kayak tips over when you've reached too far.Â
He wastes no time and rows his boat with all his might after hearing your yelp. His arms burn as he pushes through the water but before he can get any closer to you, Sunghoon has jumped out of his kayak to help you back to the surface. Heâs able to drag you to the shore nearby and takes off your life jacket when the two of you are sitting on the edge of dry land. Heeseung manages to haul your kayak and paddle while Jay, who also saw the incident, grabs Sunghoonâs. The two of them wordlessly make their way to you and Sunghoon.
Heeseung sees and hears you coughing but heâs also aware of the fact that youâre situated between Sunghoonâs arms. Heâs got you securely wrapped between him as you regain your breath. Itâs selfish to even consider the idea that he might be jealous but he canât help it, especially since youâre gripping onto his arms like heâs your lifeline.Â
âShit, Y/N,â Jay says as he takes his life jacket off. Heeseung does the same and parks his boat to get out of the water. âAre you okay?â
âMhm,â you mutter, catching your breath from the water thatâs still lodged in your throat. âJesus, I didnât think that would happen.â
âYou gave me a heart attack.â Sunhoon laughs from behind you but doesnât push you away just yet. Heeseung watches you.
âI got your boat and paddle,â he says pathetically, feeling awkward when the three of you look at him. âIâm glad youâre okay.âÂ
âThanks.â You cough when you speak and Sunghoon rubs your back gently. âWhy does this shit keep happening to me?âÂ
âMaybe Heeseungâs bad luck,â Sunghoon snickers. Thereâs no real animosity in his tone but Heeseung feels upset nonetheless.Â
âSorry,â he finds himself apologizing.Â
âIt wasnât your fault,â you tell him, leaning back against Sunghoon as you catch your breath. âI think thatâs enough kayaking for today, though.â
Jay laughs. âYeah, you can say that again. Iâm getting hungry anyway. Sunoo and Riki are probably complaining about that too.âÂ
At dinner, the eight of you sit around the fire as Jay, with the help of Riki and Sunoo, prepare and serve the food. The warm food satisfies everyone and everybody takes turns swapping stories about kayaking, and everybody laughs when Sunghoon recounts the story of you tipping over your boat. Riki keeps your plate full and tries to give you more meat but you shake your head. He pouts and you eventually relent, and that makes Heeseung smile.
He can feel Jungwon looking at him. The younger boy sits next to Heeseung and looks at him every so often, especially when you start talking or when the topic of discussion falls onto you. He ignores it to the best of his ability because heâs sure his friend has picked up on the fact that heâs not acting like heâs not interested anymore. When Jungwon pulls him aside when everybody leaves to get ready for bed, he isnât surprised.Â
âWhatâs up with you?â Jungwon asks quizzically. âDonât act like you donât know what I mean either, Heeseung. You were acting weird at dinner.âÂ
âTo make a long story short, the reason why I didnât like Y/N all this time was because I thought she was the one who said I would never make it in music. Sunoo told me it was Chaewon, not Y/N.âÂ
Jungwonâs eyes open comically. âThatâs the reason you didnât like Y/N?!â Heeseung smacks his shoulder and shushes him. âYou know if you just, like, told any of us why you were so mad at her, we couldâve solved this and you wouldnât have lost a friend.â Ouch.Â
âYeah,â Heeseung replies, looking at the ground below him, âI know. I feel like an idiot and I feel guilty. I want to make it right with her but Iâve acted like such an ass. I told myself it was for the better.â
âYou really were an ass,â Jungwon agrees. âDid you know she almost pulled out of this trip when she found out you were going?â
Heeseungâs shoulders slump. âI fucked up, Won. Youâre her best friend and I put you in an uncomfortable position too. Iâm sorry. I want to make things right but we havenât had a real conversation in years.âÂ
âYouâre going to have to do a lot more than apologize.â Jungwon sighs and beckons Heeseung to sit down on a log next to him. âShe doesnât hate you, Heeseung. Y/Nâs sensitive, you know? Sheâs sensitive in the way that she feels things pretty deeply and doesnât push things aside anymore. Back in high school, she went through something pretty life changing that forced her to shut down and all she wanted was to reach out to you but you iced her out.âÂ
âI feel awful. She has every right to hate me.â
âThatâs the thing, Heeseung. Y/N doesnât hate you. She doesnât understand what she did that made you pull away and sheâs hurt that you wonât talk to her about it. Sheâs done all she can trying to get through to you but sheâs given up because that didnât seem like it was going anywhere.â
âCan I ask you something?â Jungwon nods. âIfâŠIf I talked to her, apologized and tried to tell her what was going on at the time, do you think sheâd forgive me?âÂ
Heeseung waits for his friend to answer. âI think she would appreciate that you put in the effort to be there for her. She still cares about you even if she says she doesnât.â
âI donât know about that.âÂ
âI do. Iâm her best friend, Heeseung.â The elder nods. âWhat Iâm saying is this: All Y/N has ever wanted was for you to make an effort for her. When you stopped being her friend, she wondered for months if she was a bad person because you didnât talk to her about why you pulled away so suddenly. Apologizing doesnât mean the two of you will go back to the way you used to, but sheâll appreciate that over distancing yourself because you feel guilty.âÂ
That last part hurts to hear but he understands. âDo you think Y/N and I could ever be friends?âÂ
Jungown nods. âYeah, actually. I can tell that youâre being upfront with me right now. You know how she is. She values honesty and loyalty. Of everyone in our friend group, Y/N is the one whoâs really good at communicating and giving advice about that kind of stuff. She doesnât need you to go above and beyond for her. It might take time but I know sheâd appreciate it if you at least made an effort to talk to her and clear up some stuff.âÂ
Heeseung is lost in thought and barely hears Jungwon tell him heâll try his best to let the two of you talk tomorrow night after dinner. He doesnât know how to thank him other than to pull him into a tight embrace and cling onto the younger boy like heâs got something to lose. Jungwon seems to understand where Heeseung is coming fromïżœïżœhe, too, has had his fair share of arguments with youâso he hugs him back as if to say everything will be alright.Â
When you wake up the next morning, a weird feeling settles in your chest. Jungwon is fast asleep when you leave the tent to get ready for the day after failing to fall asleep. The sun is already up and you donât know what time it is, but the morning is cold and the sweater you have on protects you from the chill nicely.Â
You see Heeseung at the wash station and grip your toiletry bag when he spots you. Awkwardly, you step into the bath house and turn the faucet on as he brushes his teeth, motioning yourself to do the same thing. He watches you from the mirror as you keep your eyeline straight in front of you. He wants to say something to you, perhaps âgood morningâ or âhow did you sleep?â but nothing seems good enough. You, on the other hand, feel like Heeseung may as well put you under a microscope.Â
âCan I help you?âÂ
He looks at you as if heâs been caught with his hand down the cookie jar. âN-No. Sorry.â You sigh and resume brushing your teeth when he spits and rinses his mouth of the toothpaste. âI mean what I said I was sorry. I really am.â
âFor which part? Cussing me out or avoiding me since high school?â You sound tired.Â
âAll of it,â he says quietly. You keep your head straight while he looks at you. âI have no excuse. Iâve been acting like a dick towards you and I feel awful.â You donât say anything. âIâŠI thought you were the one who said I wouldnât make it as a producer. I didnât know it was Chaewon who said it and that you were the one who defended me. I was stupid and angry, and I took it out on you without knowing the whole truth.Â
âI didnât find out until Sunoo told me yesterday. I didnât talk about that with anyone since we were friends, you know? I was so hurt but I didnât know that it was my fault for making myself feel like thatâŠAnd in turn, I made you feel like you didnât have a place in my life. Iâm so, so sorry that I treated you like you didnât mean anything to me when you did.âÂ
You donât look at him as you finish your morning routine. He stands there awkwardly, waiting for you to say something.Â
âI went through a lot of shit back then,â you say, turning to face him. âMy dad left just after you stopped talking to me and all I wanted to do was talk to you about it. You always knew what to say to make me feel better but then you started ignoring me like I never mattered to you. Do you know how badly that hurt to have one of my best friends stop giving a shit about me?Â
âI watched you hang out with our mutual friends. I watched you do really cool things with music but I did all of that on the sidelines because you never included me, even though I was the only person who really supported you., I donât think you really get that there were so many people back then who just wanted to be your friend because a few of your songs blew up on the internet. I watched you keep them close while you pushed me aside without giving me the chance to make up for whatever I did to make you upset.Â
âIâve spent the last few years trying to be okay with the fact that you didnât want to be friends anymore. I tried so hard to accept that you and I would only be people who saw each other in passing. But that hurt. It hurt so much to think you didnât care about me for one second and didnât care that I was upset too.âÂ
Your confession hangs in the air and Heeseung feels like crying when he sees that youâve started to tear up. You wipe them away aggressively, too embarrassed to be seen weeping in front of him.Â
âIâm sorry.â Heeseungâs voice cracks. âI am, Y/N. You were so good to me and I took that for granted.â
âYeah, you could say that.âÂ
âI canât make excuses for myself back then but I want you to know I own up to everything. Iâm sorry that I let you feel like that and wasnât mature enough to talk to you. I know Iâm too late, but you deserve an apology. You deserve more than that.âÂ
Heeseung thinks youâre going to storm past him like he did a few nights prior. He thinks you might spit in his face and tell him to go to hell. But all you do is stare at him in silence.Â
âIâve wanted to hear you say that for a long time,â you tell him. âSo thanks for that. I feel beyond hurt by everything you did and everything youâve ever said since we stopped being friends. All I have ever wanted was to be in the same room and not worry about if you wanted me there or not. This entire trip has felt like walking on eggshells around you.â He lets you step around him and out of the bath house.Â
âI donât hate you either, Heeseung. I know you probably think that I do but I don't.âÂ
***
The rest of your friends can tell somethingâs going on between the two of you but choose not to comment on it. Everybody is off doing their own thing, as today is the last day of camping, and nobody wants to accidentally spoil it. You and Jungwon decide to head over to your âsecret spot,â just the two of you, for old timeâs sake.
âIâll miss you when I leave Korea,â you say as the two of you sit on the ground. âI donât know how Iâm gonna do any of this without you, Wonnie.â
âI know youâre scared of the future and about your dad asking to see you, but youâve got to know that youâre stronger than any of us. Youâre like, a superhero, or something.âÂ
âNow youâre just being corny.âÂ
Jungwon laughs. âYeah, maybe I am. But seriously, Y/N, Iâve always liked that you were able to find some of your optimism again. You make me feel like things will get better for me too. I canât sit here and pretend I know what youâre going through, but Iâll always be here for you. My parents will too.â
âI still remember the look on their faces when my mom broke the news,â you snort. âThey looked like they were ready to go to prison for murder.âÂ
âIâve never seen them so angry. I felt like castrating your dad.âÂ
âDidnât we all?âÂ
âBut at least we got Riki out of it.â You smile fondly. Jungwon wants to tell you heâs proud of how far youâve come, but decides to keep that to himself for now.
âI love him, you know. Even if I donât really say it. I think it was hard for me to be able to say I loved him without feeling guilty. I thought I was betraying my mom if I gave Riki a chance and seeing her step up to be a parental figure when my dad was too busy mingling with our side of the family was hard. Weâve never talked about it but I know she doesnât hate Riki. She wouldnât have forced me to spend time with him if she did.
âHeâs such a bright kid and heâs so talented. It makes me happy when people recognize that too. He taught me a lot about prioritizing my feelings. Learning to re-evaluate my life when Riki showed up made me feel, I donât know, more mature? Like, I can be upset and still care about people because we all make mistakes and none of us asked to be here.âÂ
Jungwon lets a beat of silence pass before speaking. âDid Heeseung talk to you?â
âThis morning. Why do you ask?â
âWell, I saw him acting a bit different at the bonfire last night and asked him if anything happened. He told me why he was so mad at you for so long and said he wanted to apologize.â
âMen are so fucking stupid,â you sigh, bringing your knees to your chest. âI donât understand why he didnât talk to me in the first place.â
âMe either, honestly. But at least heâs making an effort. Isnât that what you said you wanted?âÂ
You nod. âYeah. Feelings are complicated. Iâve been angry for so long. I always thought Iâd yell at him and give him a piece of my mind, or something. I thought I would hate him and tell him to forget about me. But when he apologized, he said it in a way that made me believe he meant it. It didnât feel like he was bullshitting me. I felt stuck.âÂ
âWhat did you end up saying?âÂ
âI told him how hurt I was during that time and said I wished he was there for me like I was for him when I was dealing with my dad. I told him how I wished we couldâve talked it out.âÂ
âThatâs a good start.âÂ
âI donât think weâll ever go back to the way we were but I also know Heeseung. I know it took a lot out of him to set aside his pride and put somebody else first. I donât really know what Iâm gonna do now. All I know is Iâm tired of being upset and I want to feel okay.â
Jungwon nudges your shoulder with his. âYouâll be just fine. The universe moves for you, Y/N. Thereâs no way you wonât have a happy ending.â He watches you hide a smile.Â
âYou are such a sap.âÂ
âItâs what you love about me.âÂ
âUnfortunately.â Youâll really miss him. âI gotta take it one day at a time, right? Heeseung is going to be in my life for a long time since we share so many friends. Riki loves him too, and I guess I canât hate Heeseung too much for looking out for him. I donât think I have any room to think about it when I get back because Iâll be doing some last minute packing and getting ready to move.âÂ
âItâll be over before you know it. But even then, youâre going to have the best time in Okayama. Fuck your dad and all of the bad shit.â
âYeah,â you laugh. âFuck my dad.âÂ
The end of the trip is bittersweet. You start to tear up when you see the campsite completely empty and move slowly to pack everything in the cars. Heeseung notices but doesnât say anything, offering to grab whateverâs in your hands when he sees you looking out into the clearing for extended periods of time. He doesnât pretend to know what youâre feeling but he knows he doesnât like it when you cry.
He watches you get into Jayâs car and wishes that you could be comfortable sitting alone with him. While Jake mans the aux, Heeseung thinks about what might happen when you move away. Will the two of you remain how you are or will you grow apart? Is there any room for him in your life now that youâre off to explore a different part of the world? Will he ever be able to push past the gnawing feeling of pushing his pathetic crush on you down until he no longer thinks of you like that?
Heâs never admitted it, but those feelings he had towards you all those years ago never really went away. Heeseung doubled down on his irritation because doing otherwise would allow all of those romantic feelings to overwhelm him. He kept his head down around you because he knew one look at you would be enough to throw his inhibitions away and he was afraid he would risk everything heâs ever wanted just for you to tell him you love him too. Now that he knows everything was a misunderstanding, the grave loss weighs on him. Heâs got a million thoughts running through his mind and none of them seem to make any sense. These romantic feelings didnât lie dormant for all of these years, right?Â
The next week and a half feels like it passes by too quickly for the both of you. You finish packing the morning of your going away party that everyone helped set up and plan. Your mom, along with Jungwonâs parents, all of your friends and their parents, and Maeumi, presentes you with the kind of happiness you never want to forget. Even Heeseung, who shows up and gives you a letter when no one else is looking, makes you feel like you would be dearly missed. Youâre not sure that you enjoy being the center of attention, but everybodyâs kindness makes you feel like you deserve to be.Â
Itâs late when they leave and socializing makes you feel far more exhausted than you anticipated. Your flight is midday tomorrow but you try not to think about that. Heeseungâs letter sits on the edge of your bed and the green envelopeâyour favorite colorâstares at you like itâs begging you to open it. And open it you do.Â
Y/Nâ
I donât know where to start. Iâm sorry, first of all, for treating you the way I did. I was a sorry excuse for a friend. I shouldâve talked to you instead of jumping to conclusions and it doesnât matter that we were both young. Friends annoy each other but they donât disrespect one another. Iâm so sorry that I made you doubt yourself.Â
Iâll miss you a lot when youâre in Japan. We didnât get the chance to talk it out and I understand if you donât want anything to do with me after you leave. You deserve people who will be there for you. But please know Iâll always be rooting for you.Â
LastlyâŠI donât know if this is my place to say this but here goes nothing. Back when we were close, the one thing I loved about you was how passionate you were about life. You loved to learn and explore new things, and you always made me feel like I could feel that way too. I know youâre scared about Okayama for a number of reasons but youâre the strongest person I know. Youâll be just fine, even if you donât feel like you will be. Iâll be here for you whenever you need me. I mean it.
- Heeseung
For the first time in a while, you allow yourself to cry over Lee Heeseung and surprise yourself when you realize that you want him back.Â
***
At the airport, your mom helps you check in your luggage and asks if youâve got everything you need and makes you double check everything. Itâs reminiscent of the way you did with Riki before the camping trip. Youâre happy despite feeling a bit annoyed that sheâs making you take off your backpack. You donât totally mind it, though. She gives you a hug that feels like it could last a lifetime and letting her go is the hardest thing youâve ever done.Â
Everybody else gives you love, too. Sunoo is the first to hug you and makes you promise to bring him back some skincare and souvenirs the next time youâre able to get back to Korea. Jake embraces you next and gives you some words of encouragement while Jay does his best to pretend like he isnât sad by complaining about how there will be one less cook in the kitchen. You throw your arms around him anyway and pretend not to hear him sniffle. Sunghoon traps you in a bear hug and makes you promise to take as many photos as possible and says heâll look forward to seeing them. He, too, pretends like heâs not about to cry. You push your head onto his shoulder and give his hand a squeeze before he lets a few teardrops fall.Â
Jungwon is the most emotional of them all. He wipes away his free falling tears and crushes you in a hug, burying his head in your neck. âYou better come back, asshole. I canât believe youâre gonna leave me to chase your dreams. Thatâs so selfish of you.â You think you might cry too but laugh anyway.Â
âI love you so much, Wonnie.â He squeezes you like heâs afraid heâll forget what it feels like to be in your embrace until Jake pries him off of your body.Â
Riki stands awkwardly with his eyes to the floor and his hands in front of him. The taller boy feels as though his shoes are glued down but you see the way his gaze flickers as if heâs trying to figure out what to do next. It doesnât take much out of you to throw your arms around him and push yourself into his chest.Â
âIâm going to miss you a lot, Riki,â you tell him.
âReally?â You nod.Â
âI know I havenât been the best towards you but you need to know that Iâm so proud of you, okay? I loved getting to know you. I loved that you came on the trip and Iâm so fucking happy that youâre my brother. Out of everybody who couldâve popped into my life, Iâm so glad it was you.âÂ
Everybody watches Riki melt in front of them as he envelopes you right into him. You feel the weight of his shoulders relax and for the first time, you feel like youâre starting to wonder if this is what it feels like to have everything figured out.Â
âIâll come visit you,â he promises. âIâll come home for winter break.â
âStay with me. We can do all of the corny shit siblings do. Iâll even pay for everything.âÂ
Riki laughs but doesnât let you go. âYouâre the best, you know that? Even though it took you some time, I always thought of you like my sister. Iâm really happy to be around you.âÂ
The waterworks begin and Riki does his best to comfort you when he feels tears on his shirt. He feels somewhere in between empty and fulfilled knowing the two of you have made amends, but knowing you want to work towards the future is enough to make him confident that everything will be alright. He lets you go when he feels your arms loosen around him and aggressively wipes his own tears away.Â
When you look at Heeseung, the last thing he expects you to do is acknowledge him. He came to the airport because he wants you to know he meant everything in the letter he wrote. He stayed up all night to check for your texts but you hadnât said anything, and while he knew it was an emotional day for you because of all you were dealing with, a selfish part of him wanted to know what you thought about it.Â
You surprise Heeseung and yourself by engulfing him in a hug. The familiarity of his embrace makes you feel nostalgic and you canât help but cry right into his chest. Heeseung doesnât hesitate and brings his arms to wrap around your fragile body as you silently weep against him. He holds you tight and gently rocks your body like he used to all those years ago. You donât fight back either. Instead, you push your head deeper into him and hold him until your tears have stopped.Â
âI read your letter,â you say quietly. âWe have a lot to talk about but I appreciate everything you said, Heeseung. I tried to hate you but I could never bring myself to feel that way about you.â
âIâm really going to miss you. Can I be selfish?â Heeseung asks with a sob in his throat. âI wish I apologized sooner and I wish we had more time. But please, promise me that youâre going to try to have fun in Japan, okay? Youâre the best person I know, even if I didnât make you feel like it. Iâll always live with that regret but knowing youâll forget about me and make a life for yourself is enough.â
âI could never truly forget about you, Hee.â That nickname you used to call him makes Heeseungâs heart beat faster. âI donât want you out of my life. All these years I felt like thatâs what I wanted but I donât want that now. Be happy without me too, okay? Forget about me and follow that dream of yours.âÂ
Heeseung laughs sadly. âI donât think I could ever forget about you.â You step away from him and wipe your eyes for the umteenth time.Â
âWrite a song for me, then. And donât be a stranger, okay?âÂ
âOkay.â Heeseung swears on it. âI wonât.âÂ
A beat of silence passes before all seven of your friends push you into the middle of their group hug. It brings another round of tears to your eyes and Jungwonâs the one who lets you cry into him until your mom tells you itâs time to start boarding. Everybody gets one final goodbye before you disappear into the plane.Â
You smile at your phone when you settle into your seat.Â
lee heeseung: I miss you alreadyÂ
You miss him too.
***
Okayama is a dream until it isnât. You settled into your apartment and had one month before you started your job and went to all the places Riki recommended. You started to understand him a little better after moving and both of you find it hilarious that you two ended up living in each othersâ hometowns. You canât choose your siblings but youâd choose Riki in every lifetime.Â
You call your mom every so often and update her on life. Your friends keep you in the loop and FaceTime you when theyâre out together. It makes you feel like youâre back in Korea and while it isnât the same, you appreciate the effort anyway. Youâve made friends with your neighbors and a few girls you met when you went out drinking with your cousin the week you moved and it made braving a whole new country feel less daunting. Jungwon calls you everyday and you tease him for being such a clingy friend, but you both know you love it. You inform him about everything from the boring details to juicy work drama, and it feels like youâre sitting in his bedroom wearing face masks and eating junk food.Â
Heeseung has been a constant fixture in your life, too. You texted him the moment you landed and he kept the conversation going. You talk about everything, the past especially, and start to feel like things might be okay. Those butterflies that you had for him in high school made an appearance after three months in Japan and part of you wondered if you were a fool for bringing him back into your life after everything. All of your friends back in Korea tell you Heeseung is miserable without you and when they tease him in the big group chat, he doesnât deny it.
The friends you made seemed dividedâone half thought you should leave him in the dark while the other half swooned over his dedication to making things right. You donât really know what to think or how to feel, but you know youâre happy. Between phone calls and late night texts, you were always left with a smile on your face before bed.
Riki came back to Okayama for winter break and spent two weeks in your apartment. When the two of you werenât bickering as siblings do, you both stayed up way too late watching anime and watched him dance at his home studio. Riki even got you to attend a few classes (he tried not to laugh at your poor coordination skills but appreciated the effort anyway). You prefer to be in the audience.Â
Life seemed great until your dad made an appearance just before Christmas. He knew you were here from a single text message he never responded to before you moved to Okayama. The weight of his silence prepared you to be in Japan without him but his sudden appearance made you feel like everything changed for the worse. Riki went back to his childhood home to see his family and asked you to come with him after your dad had forced him. Your brother knows the intricate dynamic and you donât blame him for anything. Seeing your dad with his new family after sparse texts since he left felt like a punch in the gut. It soured your holidays and Riki spent the rest of his trip apologizing even though you told him there was no reason for him to be sorry. You dropped him off at the airport and told him youâd see him in the summertime.Â
The holidays came and went but the feelings youâve carried since then havenât disappeared, which brings you to the present. Heeseung is standing in the doorway of your apartment in Okayama, looking at you with those big, round doe eyes you always loved.Â
âHi,â he says breathlessly.Â
âHeeseungâŠWhat are you doing here?â He scratches the back of his neck.Â
âYouâve been going through a lot, you know? Every time we talked on the phone, you sounded like you were a thousand miles away and it killed me to know I couldnât do anything to make you feel better after the holidays with your dad. Jungwon and I have been talking about how much of an ass he is and how much we wish we could be here for you and the next thing I knew, he was encouraging me to buy the next flight out to see you,â Heeseung says in a single breath. âBut honestly? I just really, really fucking missed you.â
âYou flew all this way here? For me?â
âYeah.â Heeseung says it like itâs a no-brainer. âAlthough, now I feel kinda stupid. I realize Iâm putting you in a tough spot. But you know what? I think itâs worth it to know that youâre okay.âÂ
He looks at you but you donât say anything. Heeseung can see the gears turning inside of your head while you process his arrival. You look so cute in your sleep shorts and oversized shirt. He loves it when you call him via FaceTime because he gets to see all parts of youâgetting ready for work and winding down as you are now. It makes him feel like youâre pulling him right back into you.Â
You donât really need to say anything. You lurch yourself onto him and press your lips against his like itâs something youâve been waiting to do for the longest time. You probably have. Heeseung wraps his arms around you and lets his mouth melt against yours and doesnât complain about your boldness either. He welcomes it, even.Â
âYouâre so stupid,â you mutter against him, pulling him into your apartment and locking the door behind you. You kiss him repeatedly and he puts his hands on your waist as if to let you know heâs right there with you.Â
âWhy am I stupid, baby?â Heeseungâs voice paired with that nickname makes your knees buckle. Â
âYou can stay with me.â He feels you smile against your lips. âPlease justâŠstay here and donât go.âÂ
âIâm not going anywhere.âÂ
Heeseung drops his backpack onto the floor and lets you capture his mouth again. You taste so fresh with your cherry lip balm. He moans right into your mouth when you push him against your countertop and the feeling of his hands on your body makes you grow hotter as the seconds pass by. The ache between your legs starts to overwhelm you as his plump lips kiss you over and over again before he pushes them against your neck. Itâs too much in all of the right ways and youâre too aroused to even think straight. You start to pull yourself away from Heeseung and heâs about to ask if heâs going too fast when you grab your hand and lead him to your bedroom.Â
âY/N, wait,â Heeseung tries to say in between kisses. He loves the feeling of your warm mouth against him and feels himself starting to get worked up but he doesnât know if youâre thinking straight. Even though the two of you have talked nearly everyday, Heeseung doesnât know if this is moving too fast.Â
âIâm done waiting.â You pull away from him and reach for his hand, pushing his lengthy fingers past your shorts and underwear until he feels the wet slick starting to pool at your folds. Your hand moves his back and forth as he looks at you like youâve stunned him with a laser gun. Heeseungâs dick jumps in his pants and it takes him a second to move his fingers on his own accord. âI want you, Heeseung. Donât you want me too?â
His resolve crumbles. Heeseung nods with his mouth parted as he pushes his fingers inside you, your wetness allowing him to reach your depths immediately. You push yourself on your toes and put your hands on his chest, clinging onto him like youâre afraid heâd let you go if you donât. He thrusts his fingers with intention and hears your quiet whimpers when he leans his head down next to your mouth.
âYeah,â Heeseung says, lips touching the shell of your ear as his voice ripples through your body. âI want you.â
He pulls his hand away from you and smiles at the short whine from the loss of his touch. Heeseung loves how much you need him and heâs sure you can see how much he needs you too. A surge of confidence jolts within you as Heeseung looks down at your body like heâs ready to eat you alive. You peel off your shirt and shorts, leaving you in your underwear as Heeseung pulls his shirt over his head with a single hand.Â
âLie down,â Heeseung beckons. You do as he says and he sinks down to his knees and pries your legs apart, looking directly at you as he speaks. âGood girl.â He pulls your garments down your legs and the cool air hits your center as Heeseung looks down at you.Â
You donât have time to think about anything when he peppers soft kisses on your skin. His lips journey from the inside of your knee and he presses one small kiss to your slit before repeating the process on your other leg. Heeseung allows himself to get lost in the way your body reacts to his feather-like touches before descending down onto your folds.Â
Heeseungâs tongue feels like the closest thing to magic. He takes his time when licking you with his warm and wet muscle, canvassing every ridge with expert movements. You rake your fingers through his hair and tug gently at his soft roots, pulling a moan out of him that delivers a delicious shock up your spine. He puts your feet on his shoulders and plunges his tongue inside of you and grips your flesh with his fingertips until youâre coming undone on his mouth.Â
âSo fucking good,â he mutters to himself more than he does to you. He laps up your release and you find yourself a bit embarrassed that you were able to come so quickly, but the way he touches you makes it seem as though he already knew how to push your buttons. âYouâre so sweet, Y/N. I could eat you all day if youâd let me.âÂ
Heeseung trails his lips up your stomach and kisses you so tenderly that you feel as though your body must be made out of soft cotton. His lips find your left nipple and lets his tongue swirl over the bud before sucking on it with a gentle motion. He repeats the process on the other nub and flicks it, enjoying the soft sounds that come from you. Heeseung buries himself right into your neck but he doesnât kiss the skin like you think he will. Instead, he kisses you twice on your open neck before moving his body so that he can look down at you.Â
He bites his lip. It makes you feel exposed but somehow, it makes you feel all that more confident. Itâs like Heeseung is looking right through you with all of your worries and faults laid out for him to reject. But he doesnât. Likewise, Heeseung allows you to see him in his vulnerability and heâs ready to pack up his things and leave if you tell him you donât want this anymore. But you donât.Â
He descends on you once again, this time his lips pushing against you in a slow and sensual kiss. You feel the way he moves against you and savor the sounds your mouths make together. Heeseung brings his hand to brush strands of your hair away from your face as he kisses you and the gentle touch of his fingertips feels like it was always meant to be there.Â
âI need you.â Your back arches right into his chest as you speak. âDonât make me wait, Heeseung. Please, I justâŠI need you.âÂ
âIâll never make you wait. Never again,â he promises. Heeseung manages to rid himself of his pants and boxers and pushes himself between your legs until his dick is situated between your folds. Your arousal, paired with the precum oozing from his slit, provides the perfect balance of wetness that coats the entirety of his cock as he glides himself against you.Â
When his tip catches your hole, the sounds of your moans overpowers his refrain. He pushes inside of you slowly inch by inch, savoring the way you feel for the fear that he might never be able to do this again. You look so beautiful underneath him with his dick completely sheathed inside of you and when your legs wrap around his body to encourage him to move, Heeseung doesnât deny you of your pleasure.Â
Neither of you have ever had sex like thisâthe feeling of pure rawness echoes throughout the room between your breathy moans and the sound of skin pushing against one another. Your body is warm in the way he always imagined and his hands touch every inch of you as if to commit your silhouette to memory. In this moment, Heeseung feels as though the two of you are kindred spirits who found each other.
âYouâre so good for me,â Heeseung whispers into your neck as he thrusts into you. âSo fucking tight and wet.â He feels your arms wrap around his shoulders to keep him trapped between you but he canât say he minds all that much.Â
âI-Iâm so close,â you say in a broken moan.Â
âAlready, baby?â Heeseung says to tease you as he brings his head up to look down at you again. He pushes his hips against you faster and that surprised gasp you let out makes his balls clench.Â
âS-Shut up.âÂ
Your arms fall to the mattress as you claw at your sheets. Heeseung plans his elbows on either side of your head as he focuses all of his willpower towards fucking you with fast deep strokes, loving the way your mouth parts slightly and how your eyes are closed shut. His muscles flex as he pushes himself until youâre coming with a loud moan, and finds himself releasing inside of you the moment he feels you gushing around him.Â
You feel Heeseung press his tender lips against your forehead as you come down from your high while he continues to rock you through your release. Your cheeks are hot from the pleasure and the room is suddenly too warm with Heeseung on top of you. When you open your eyes, heâs looking at you like heâs seen a halo above your head. He canât really help it. Heeseung leans down to press a soft, gentle kiss against your lips to convey a job well down.Â
âI came so fast,â you whisper bashfully. You bite your lip but Heeseung tugs it away from your teeth to kiss you again.Â
âMe too.â Heeseung kisses your nose and relishes in the way you scrunch your face. âBut itâs okay. You deserve to feel good. I donât care how long or short it takes.â He places his hand on your face and rubs the apple of your cheek with his thumb.Â
âI really missed you.âÂ
âI missed you too, dummy,â Heeseung says before flicking your nose. He holds your jaw in place before kissing you again.Â
âWeâre gonna have to do a lot of making up, you know,â you mumble against his lips with a smile.Â
âOh yeah?âÂ
âMhm.â You push against his lips. Heeseung pushes his half-hard dick inside of you as your back arches right into him. Heâs there to catch you this time, his arm supporting your spine underneath you. âFuck!âÂ
âMy baby,â he whispers into you. âLet me make it up to you.âÂ
You let him.
***
EPILOGUE: THE FOLLOWING SPRING
âFor fuckâs sake, get your big ass head out of the way.â
Jay smacks Jakeâs shoulder. âYou can see just fine, stupid.â Sunghoon hits both of their shoulders.Â
âBoth of you, stop moving so much. You guys almost knocked my camera.â They mumble a quick apology before finding another thing to discuss.Â
âI feel like Iâm surrounded by children.â You sigh as Heeseung wraps his arms around your waist and lets his chin sit atop the crown of your head. He feels your body relax against him and smiles.Â
âWell you are, technically. Riki just stopped wearing diapers.âÂ
âI hate you so much, Heeseung,â the younger boy whines without any true malice. You laugh and squeeze Rikiâs hand. He canât find it in himself to be too mad at either of you.Â
âDo you guys see Jungwon and Sunoo?â Sunghoon asks with his camera at the ready. âI want to make sure I take as many pictures as possible.âÂ
âI donât think theyâre coming out yet,â says Jay.Â
âDuh.â Jake provokes him in a way you missed while you were in Okayama. It brings warmth to your heart when you see them bicker.Â
Jay turns to you. âY/N, have you given a second thought about moving in with Jake when you come back? I think youâd be better off if you kicked him to the streets.â
âHey!â Jake tackles Jay until heâs got his older friendâs neck between his arms. None of you pay too much attention and choose to wait for Jungwon and Sunoo.Â
âOur friends are another breed,â Heeseung mumbles against you as he kisses your cheek. âAre you sure you want to move back and be roommates with Jake and Jungwon?âÂ
âMhm. I miss you guys so much.âÂ
âBut you miss me the most, right?âÂ
âYes, baby.â You bring his hand up to your lips and kiss the back of it. âI missed you the most.âÂ
âThere they are!â Riki shouts.Â
Jungwon and Sunoo, clad in their caps and gowns, saunter their way out of the stadium before spotting your group. They make a run for it and push past the onlookers who search for their loved ones as well. Sunoo clings onto Jake while Jungwon finds his perch in Rikiâs arms as Sunghoon captures the beautiful moment on his digital camera.Â
âWe fucking did it!â Jungwon shouts as he pulls away. âSunoo, we did it!âÂ
âAbout damn time,â Sunoo replies as he rolls his eyes with a smile. âI felt like Iâd be there forever.âÂ
âWeâre so proud of you both.ïżœïżœ Jay smiles and moves to hug each of them. âYou guys are amazing, seriously.âÂ
âI canât believe youâre leaving me.â Riki bumps hips with Sunoo. âThat seems unfair.âÂ
âLife is unfair.â Thereâs no real bite to his tone, just a bittersweet future. Sunoo hugs the taller boy.Â
âOh my God,â Jungwon says with his hand pressed to his mouth. âY/N is crying.âÂ
âNo Iâm not,â you say, even though you definitely are. Heeseung squeezes you tighter against him. âShut up, Jungwon. Iâm not crying.âÂ
âYou so are!â Riki shouts.Â
âIâm not crying. Seeing my best friends graduate college is not a good reason to cry, okay?!âÂ
Jungwon and Sunoo sport shit-eating grins. Heeseung lets you go as they engulf you in a hug while the younger of the two feels your hot tears on his cheek. He laughs and this moment starts to feel a bit nostalgic to him, as he acted the same way you did upon seeing you in your cap and gown.Â
âHey,â he says in a softer tone, pulling away from the two of you. âThanks for being here. I know taking time off was a little hard but weâre so happy you could come.â
âYeah,â Sunoo agrees. âTalking to you over the phone isnât enough. We missed you, you know?âÂ
You tear up again and wipe your nose before falling into them again. âI missed you too.â
âOh God,â Sunghoon laughs. âIf Y/Nâs crying then I know weâre in for it.âÂ
âHey!â Heeseung jokes, nudging his friend with his shoulder. âDonât talk about my girlfriend like that.â Although, he canât really disagree with Sunghoon.Â
âYouâre all so stupid for making me cry in public,â you say as you wipe your tears from your eyes. âIâm gonna look back at these pictures and my eyes will be all red and puffy.âÂ
âI feel like you and Heeseung might as well be our parents,â Sunoo says as Heeseung pulls him into a hug.
âWait, you guys should totally take a family photo.â Jake steps forward to arrange the four of you like a family portrait with Jungwon and Sunoo between you and Heeseung. âThere. Sunghoon, take a picture. This is so going on the fridge when we move in together.âÂ
Heeseung moves back next to you as the rest of your friends look at the photos on Sunghoonâs camera and take turns taking pictures of him with the graduates. He kisses your cheek and pulls you back into him.Â
âYou ready to come back to all this chaos?â
âMore than ready,â you affirm. âI loved Okayama, even though I had to deal with my dad and all of that stuff. But I missed my life here and the masters program over in Seoul is a good fit for me, you know? Plus, your apartment isnât too far from mine.âÂ
âI canât wait for you to move back.â Heeseung kisses your cheek again. âYour mom and I talked logistics about helping you move into the new apartment. Knowing you, Iâm sure youâll have another suitcase coming back with you.âÂ
âShut up.âÂ
âYou know Iâm right.âÂ
You blush and mumble. âYeahâŠYouâre right.âÂ
âYour mom and Jungwonâs parents talked about renting a bigger camp space this year, too. I think theyâre planning on having one huge trip this year now that most of us have graduated.âÂ
âI canât believe our last trip was almost a year ago. Thatâs insane because it feels like I moved to Japan just yesterday.âÂ
âI solemnly swear I will never be as stupid or dense as I was back then.â When you turn around to look at Heeseung, you know heâs telling the truth. You donât answer him verbally and choose to silence him with a pretty kiss. Itâs enough for the two of you.Â
âOi, love birds,â Jake calls, looking at you. âWe should find their parents. Your mom called me and I think she was crying.âÂ
You frown. âWhy didnât she call me?â Â
âShe said you were probably crying too,â Jake snickers.Â
âIs it too late to back out of being roommates?âÂ
âNope. Youâre stuck with me.âÂ
Heeseung squeezes your hand.Â
âAnd me.âÂ
As you look around, you canât help but feel as though this was always how it was meant to be.
âI wouldnât have it any other way.â
***
comments and reblogs are appreciated! xx
#enhypen smut#heeseung smut#enhypen x reader#heeseung x reader#enha x reader#enha hard thoughts#enhypen hard hours#enha smut#enhypen hard thoughts#lee heeseung smut#lee heeseung x reader#heeseung#my writing*#fic: you plus me
3K notes
·
View notes
Text
bestowing my highest honor as an artist to ffxv (drawing the characters in fun outfits)
thoughts under the cut
RREAAAGHHHH SO EXCITED TO BE DONE WITH THIS!!!!! it took me forevarrrr but i soldiered through as an act of love. now excuse me. yap time
OKAY SO the concept behind this was originally specific fashion subcultures for everyone!l ike noct emo ignis dark academia etc. but then decided i didnt want to pigeonhole it all and just freestyled outfits i thought would look nice on everyone
noct - i do think noct would still be emo-ish but also opt for comfy baggy stuff a lot. something you could just fall asleep in on the spot. note the details of bass pro shop shirt (of course) XV necklace, little moon + stars accents, carbuncle + fish keychains. i also wanted his metal band logo shirt to spell LUCIS but i forgor some letters but its not very readable anyways
ignis - ignit ooohghh ignos ignaurs. sorry i made him serve so much cunt it will happen again. i drew him first cause that kind of inspired this whole thing i love him so bad if i didnt draw it id explode. not much detail to note except his collar pins are like his double blade thingies
luna - lunaaa the concept was âclean girl aestheticâ idk if that happened but im actually really happy with how it came out! might be my favorite of the bunch just because she looks so pretty and happy. your honor she should have been able to just be a normal girl and just. chill
prompto - prompotoooo i had trouble picking his vibe!!! my first thought was techwear?? because weeheeeehee he loves tech and well... you know... but then i realized i didnt really like the look of anything i saw + it was so bulky and dark and serious for him! ending up going with some more youthful and baggy. i was considering something more loud and colorful but ended up not going with it. i feel like in canon he'd be too nervous to have such a flashy fit and would want to just look "cool" to fit in with the boys lol. itty bitty details here - chocobo keychain, pompompurin and bi miku buttons, and his lanyard is kings knight themed! i also thought it was funny to write LUCIS on his shirt like you know those shirts that just say BROOKLYN or TOKYO or SAN FRANCISCO and thats it. thats what its like
gladio - okay i know this is going to sound like a lie but im not horny for gladio like at all, hes my least favorite, i think he's just alright. but also i KNOW in my heart of hearts that he would LOVE being a leather daddy and so i had to make it happen. main detail to note here is that his tank top has the motifs of a cup noodle! i didnt know what else to add cause you know.. hes the cup noodle guy.. but also i didnt want it to be so in your face about it with a big as logo so kept it subtle!
(side note the leather daddy gave me an idea for a post where its like noct and prom go to a gay bar all nervous but then they run into gladio and its like "p: GLADIO YOURE GAY?" "n: nevermind that PLEASE dont tell ignis we snuck out" and then ignis walks up and theyre all like WHAT THE FUCK!!!! caption would be "the gang finds out theyre all bisexual." probably wont draw it but i think its very funny lol)
iris - iris my sweetheart.... definitely leaned into the scene vibes here and also that one image of the blonde emo anime girl. details here - of course the moogle big ass backpack and keychain (can you tell i love keychains), but also her buttons are an iris (the flower) and also a crown with hearts (haha symbolism)
anyways oh god i didnt mean to write an essay down here. usually i keep this in the tags but this time i just had Too Much To Say. can you tell i put a lot of thought and love into this . anwyays. *walks off into the sunset and fuckig dies*
#ffxv#final fantasy xv#ff15#final fantasy 15#noctis lucis caelum#ignis scientia#lunafreya nox fleuret#prompto argentum#gladiolus amicitia#iris amicitia#koob art#digital art#procreate#illustration#1k
2K notes
·
View notes
Text
the hard way
pairing: vampire!chris x to be vampire!reader genre/warnings: dark romance, mean chris, angst? kinda dead dove, mentions of death, blood and a lil gore (not too graphic tho imo), it's okay in the end??? and they're in love plot: reader is getting turned into a vampire and it's not as cool as she imagined authorâs note: obvsly heavily inspired by railway and that SPITTING SCENE. idk it's prolly gonna flop but i wanted to picture that process and a not so hot side of it
âno.â âwhy not?!â âbecause i told you so a million times already. weâre not discussing this.â chris spits out and furrows, growing more agitated with each passing second.
âwhat, you donât want me to be equal to you?â you ponder desperately while your mind searches for any, any reason at all as to why chris wonât turn you. itâs been getting to you for the last couple of months, and youâre sure youâve gone through every possible explanation your troubled brain could come up with: he doesnât love you. he doesnât wanna spend eternity with you. or maybe itâs a power thing. or, or, or...? this endless cycle of worry and uncertainty has been keeping you on edge for way too long to think clearly now. âgosh, it has nothing to do with equality,â he rolls his eyes and shakes his head. âwhat is it then?â âdrop it.â you snap. âweâll have to find out the hard way, then.â
you grab the nearest kitchen knife, and it turns out to be the one you use for cutting meat, a chefâs knife as they call it. how fitting. chris barely has enough time to catch up with your madness infused impulse, and when he turns his gaze back to you, the knife is already deep in your guts.
you thought it was gonna be romantic or somewhat dramatic at least. something from the movies where he sinks his vampire teeth into your neck, and just like magic â your eyes flash bright red, announcing the beginning of a new life.
âyou dumb bitch,â he exhales shakily and somehow manages to catch you in time because the sharp pain in your stomach makes you lose your balance instantly. youâre still bitter and angry in the heat of the argument and you expect him to be the same way, but when you glance up, chris looks nothing but panicked. âthatâs a new look on him,â you think, and it confuses you.
chris growls and sinks to his knees, carefully holding you and trying to move as fast as possible. what you donât know is that turning can only be done in around thirty seconds since fatal injury. that might explain the rushing and chrisâs pure bambi eyes panic but your consciousness is already starting to drift away to hold onto that train of thought.
chris bites into his wrist with unmasked fury, tearing and ripping his own veins even though using a knife would have been much cleaner. probably less painful, too. âswallow. now! come on, donât you fall asleep on me now, focus!â he grabs your face and presses hard on the jaw joints, making you open your mouth like a puppet doll.
the sickly metallic taste of your own blood at the back of your throat from the internal bleeding mixes up with chrisâs thick blood that he generously spits into your mouth, and you want to throw up. your head feels dizzy as your eyelids are getting heavier, your hearing suddenly fails completely as if someone turned the volume down from ten to zero. limbs are falling weak, and the pins and needles in them are so, so far from pleasant.
the thing about turning is... you actually have to die first. be fully, completely gone to be able to come back changed and corrupted, turned to the extent of your DNA having been violently rewritten. that you did not think through enough. the muscles in your throat contract almost on reflex, swallowing and gagging on the gooey salty substance, making your chest heave while coughing strangles you further. the tingles and nausea are so overwhelming and all consuming you actually catch yourself thinking dying would be a relief now. and then it follows as you wished.
you doze off for god knows how long but, by the looks of it, it canât have been more than a few minutes because as you regain consciousness, chris is still looming over you, his own blood fresh on his lips. heâs blurry, though, everything is.
âcome on, suck on me. câmon, baby, there we go,â he coos as he brings his wrist to your lips, forcefully pressing it into your mouth and leaving you with little to no choice. the phrasing, unlike usual, doesnât sound dirty or hot now, more like a life-saving command while youâre still so out it. it feels good, though, chrisâs blood.
it doesnât taste so metallic and gross anymore, and the texture feels almost soothing on your dry throat, like hot honey milk on a friday evening. suck, gulp, suck, gulp, suck, it almost lulls you back into serenity, some primal instinct of being attached to your only life line, finding comfort in someoneâs warmth and touch and taste.
you wonder how much youâve drunk already and whether chris will have anything left but youâre so, so thirsty you canât even bring yourself to care.
what finally makes you stop is the sudden sharp ache in your gums. it feels so piercing the aftershocks are almost reaching your brain and eye sockets, and as you feel your old teeth fall out, a pair of longer fangs cuts through and settles into the upper teeth row. hot tears are stinging your eyes and you whine like a wounded deer, still unable to speak properly. itâs all too much, and you start to regret what youâve done, and maybe, just maybe thatâs why chris so passionately refused to put you through it. this kind of hunger and the animalistic, blood thirst driven rage were never something he wanted to inflict upon you.
your entire body is shaking but itâs not really a fearful tremor, more like restlessness, a new sort of âitchâ somewhere deep, deep inside that youâve never experienced before, the feeling so intense and soul wrenching you simply canât disobey it. it makes you want to jump up and run.
âdonât worry, iâll teach you how to handle it.â chris cups your face after taking off his leather gloves so you can feel the comfort of his actual skin. the touch is calming, but barely enough compared to that growing desire and need to satisfy the itch. âyou stupid crazy cunt, why do you never listen,â he whispers into your forehead, his lips lightly brushing over your cold sweat covered skin, as he holds you closer, squeezing you against his chest in a protective manner, though the real danger to yourself is now planted within you.
#bang chan x reader#chan x reader#bang chan x you#chan x you#skz x you#skz x reader#stray kids#stray kids x reader#stray kids fanfic#railway chan#railway bang chan#my writing#my fic#skz fanfic#bang chan x y/n#chan x y/n
1K notes
·
View notes
Text
MISS YOU BABY | MV1
an: i need a hug from max verstappen stat, based off this request! thank you for sending it :)
summary: max thought his girlfriend was missing his final race during his triple header, little did he know she'd planned to come and visit all along.
wc 3.6k
The hotel room she was in was quiet.
She sat cross-legged on the bed in a dark hotel room that mirrored his, only three floors below, making sure he couldnât see her surroundings. Her phone was propped up against a pillow, and Maxâs face filled the screen, his hair still damp from the shower, tousled and messy. He looked worn-out but managed a small, tired smile just for her.
"Iâm sorry, Max. I really tried to get time off, but there was just⊠no way," she said, the fib slipping from her lips with surprising ease. "I wanted to be there with you. Especially now."
Max exhaled, leaning back against his headboard. âI know. Itâs alright.â His voice softened. âI just miss you, is all. Itâs been a rough couple of weeks.â
She nodded, biting the inside of her cheek, wishing she could reach through the screen and wrap her arms around him. "Youâll get through it, though. You always do."
"Doesnât feel that way." He laughed, but it was brittle around the edges. âI feel like Iâm letting everyone down. The team, the fans⊠you.â His eyes searched the screen, as if he might find a solution hidden somewhere in her gaze.
"Never me." She leaned closer, her face so near to the camera that she could see her reflection in his eyes. "Iâm so proud of you, Max. Always. No matter what."
For a moment, he just looked at her, his expression softening, and the tension sheâd seen in his face for days seemed to melt, just a little. "I wish you were here," he murmured. "I swear, youâre the only thing that keeps me sane sometimes."
She swallowed, feeling her heart pull toward him with a force that was hard to resist. "Soon, Iâll be back with you. Just⊠hold on a bit longer, okay?â
She gazed at his face on the screen, her heart swelling as she watched the way his eyes softened every time he looked at her. She knew he was tired and worn down, but in this moment, he looked at peace.
"I love you, Max," she whispered, her voice barely above a breath.
He closed his eyes, letting the words wash over him, and when he opened them again, there was a warmth there that seemed to cut through the miles between them. "I love you, too," he replied, a little smile tugging at the corner of his mouth. "More than you know."
She tucked her hair behind her ear, feeling her cheeks flush, and nodded. "Get some sleep, alright? Big day tomorrow."
He grinned. "Yeah, yeah. You, too. Dream about me, okay?"
She laughed, rolling her eyes, but her heart skipped all the same. "Always. Goodnight, Max."
"Goodnight, love."
With a final smile, she ended the call, letting the screen go dark as she leaned back into the pillows, her heart fluttering with anticipation. Sheâd hardly been able to sleep on the plane ride here, and she could already tell tonight would be the same.
Still, the thought of finally seeing him in person tomorrow kept her too giddy to care. Sheâd surprise him at the track, slipping through the garage just as he arrived, or maybe even at breakfast if she could manage it without spoiling the surprise. Her mind spun with ideas, each more elaborate than the last, but all she really wanted was to see his face light up when he realised she was there.
Pulling the covers up to her chin, she let her eyes drift closed, replaying the moment over and over in her mind, savouring the thought of his reaction. She loved him fiercely, and she knew that being hereâno matter how much of a secret sheâd had to make itâwas exactly where she was supposed to be.
As she finally began to drift off, her last thought was simple but bright, shining like a promise: Tomorrow, heâll know.
And while she was glad she held onto the secret.
The following morning she wished sheâd told him earlier.
She woke to the faint glow of her phone on the nightstand, her morning alarm. Blinking herself awake, she squinted at the screen and saw Maxâs name, followed by the timeâ5:02 a.m.
Heading to the track early today. Miss you already, wish you were here.
She smiled, feeling that familiar warmth spreading through her chest. But then her heart sank a little. Sheâd been hoping to catch him in the hotel this morning, maybe surprise him over breakfast. Now, with him already gone, she'd have to adjust her plans.
Throwing back the covers, she got up and went to the window. Rain streaked down the glass in thick, heavy drops, and the sky was a murky grey. The weather was only supposed to get worse throughout the day; she knew thatâd make things complicated, especially for an outdoor track. She had no clue if her surprise would even be worth the stress of navigating the drenched, crowded paddock.
After a momentâs hesitation, she tapped her phone, scrolling through her contacts until she reached the name she wanted. She dialled, and after a few rings, Maxâs assistant, Sophie, picked up.
âHey!â Sophie greeted, sounding pleasantly surprised. âWhatâs up? Did you make it in?â
âYes, Iâm here!â she whispered, unable to contain her excitement. âI wanted to surprise him before he heads out on track, but with this rain⊠do you think I should even bother?â
Sophie sighed sympathetically. âHonestly, itâs a mess out here. Theyâre saying the rainâs going to be even heavier by the time qualifying starts. Heâll be in back-to-back meetings until then, and Iâd hate for you to sit in the rain, just to get a few minutes with him.â
She nodded, glancing out the window at the sheets of rain. âSo you think I should wait?â
âIâd say hold off until right before the race,â Sophie replied. âHeâll have a short break, and I think heâd love the surprise then. Plus, everyoneâs less frantic between qualifying and race prep.â
âGood point,â she agreed, a little disappointed but knowing Sophie was right. The track on a rainy race day was chaos, and if she could avoid it until the right moment, sheâd have a better chance of actually spending time with him. âThanks, Sophie. Let me know if anything changes?â
âWill do! Heâll be so happy to see you,â Sophie said warmly. âHang tight, okay?â
As she hung up, she couldnât help but feel a twinge of excitement, knowing the surprise would be even more perfect with the wait. So she ordered herself a coffee, sat by the window, and watched the rain pour down, imagining the look on Maxâs face when heâd finally see her just before the most important race of the weekend.
The rain hadnât let up by the time she arrived at the track, the skies dark and moody, the air thick with humidity. Sheâd navigated her way through security and weaving lines of drenched fans, her heart racing as she got closer to Maxâs garage. But by the time she finally made it, he was already in the car, helmet on, visor down, his focus entirely on the track ahead.
Her heart sank a little as she scanned the bustling garage, hoping for some last chance to catch his eye. But he was already strapped in, a crew member leaning in to give him a final check before he rolled out. She spotted Sophie in the corner, scribbling something down on a clipboard, and made her way over to her.
âHey,â she whispered, feeling the dampness of the rain still clinging to her hair and clothes. âI⊠I just missed him, didnât I?â
Sophie looked up and gave her a sympathetic smile. âYeah, he was swamped the moment he got here. They barely had time to get him settled with all the delays.â She gestured to the grid display above them, where Maxâs name glowed beside the stark âP17â position. âRough start, but heâll be glad to know youâre here.â
She nodded, feeling a pang as she glanced at his car just as it rumbled to life. His fingers flexed on the steering wheel, even from a distance she could see the tension there. She let out a breath, feeling a swell of pride and worry all at once. âWell, Iâll be here watching, then.â
Sophie handed her a headset, which she slipped on just in time to hear his engineerâs voice crackle through with the first instructions as they prepared for the start. The rain was relentless, turning the track into a slick, treacherous maze, and she felt her stomach twist as the cars peeled out onto the track for the formation lap. Maxâs car trailed near the back, but she knew heâd fight, as he always did, with a ferocity she both admired and feared in moments like this.
The race began, a chaotic blur of spray and metal, the cars kicking up rooster tails of water, visibility nearly zero as they fought for position. She gripped the edge of her seat as the laps ticked by, heart pounding with every close call. It quickly became clear that the conditions were only worsening, drivers struggling to keep their cars on track, a few even skidding off into barriers with loud, bone-jarring crashes. Her hands tightened around the headset as Max navigate his way forward, battling his way to P10, then P6.
And then, just when the tension seemed to reach its peak, there was a deafening crash, followed by a sudden hush as the red flag went up, halting the race.
Her breath caught in her throat. The screen above replayed the incidentâa skidding into the barrier that had caused an emergency stop. The seconds felt like hours as she waited, desperately searching for a glimpse of his car on the feed. Finally, there it was, intact, safe. Relief flooded her, and she felt her shoulders sag.
The race restarted after the delay, and she watched in awe as Max took advantage of the reshuffled positions and tire changes, surging forward with a newfound intensity. Lap by lap, he clawed his way through the field, passing car after car with a precision that made her heart race. It was as if heâd transformed, harnessing every ounce of his frustration from the last few races, channelling it into something extraordinary.
The garage erupted in cheers as he moved into P3, then P1. She stared at the screen, hardly daring to blink, her heart racing as he crossed the finish line in first place, drenched in rain and glory.
She could hardly believe it. From P17 to P1. Heâd done it.
Forgetting herself, she laughed, a sound of pure joy, her heart swelling as she watched him slow down, the victory finally sinking in. She couldn't wait to see his face when he finally realised she was here, to be the first person heâd see when he stepped out of that car, soaked and grinning, finally at the top.
Ripping her headset off, she followed the crew as they ran out to parc fermĂ©, her heart racing as fast as the roar of the crowd. The team, buzzing with excitement, parted slightly as she joined them, nudging her to the front so sheâd be the first face he saw. She could barely breathe as she caught sight of Maxâs car, now still, the rain glistening on its blue-and-red bodywork.
With all the force he had he climbed out, pulling off his helmet to reveal damp, messy hair and a face lit up with exhilaration and disbelief. For a moment, he simply stood there, taking in the shouts of the crowd and the blinding flashes of cameras. And then, his gaze landed on her.
His eyes widened, his exhaustion and surprise giving way to pure joy. Without hesitation, he broke into a run, crossing the slick tarmac with the kind of speed and determination that made her heart leap. She barely had a second to react before he wrapped her in his arms, his lips crashing against hers as he pulled her close, his hands pressed firmly against her back, as if he still couldnât believe she was real.
âYou came,â he murmured breathlessly, pulling back just enough to look at her, his face filled with awe and happiness.
âI wouldnât have missed it for the world,â she replied, her voice trembling with emotion, brushing a wet strand of hair from his face.
He smiled, a bright, unguarded smile that melted her heart. âGod, I needed this. I needed you.â
And then he kissed her again, a kiss filled with all the missed moments and the words they hadnât been able to say, the thrill of his victory mingling with the fierce love they shared. She felt the rain soak through her clothes, the crowd and the noise around them fading as they held each other, his arms wrapping around her as if he could protect her from the rest of the world.
âI still canât believe it,â he whispered against her lips, his forehead resting against hers, his hand gently brushing her cheek. âP1. And youâre here.â
She laughed softly, her eyes shining. âYou deserve it, Max. I knew you could do it.â
He held her close, a triumphant laugh bubbling from his chest as he buried his face in her neck, and they stood there in the pouring rain, lost in each other, savouring the victory and this long-awaited moment they both knew theyâd never forget.
As the noise of the cheering crew and fans started to swell around them, Max pulled back slightly, brushing his thumb across her cheek, his gaze lingering on her face as if he was trying to commit every detail to memory.
âI have to go,â he said softly, his voice tinged with regret. âThe interviews, cool-down room, podium⊠but wait for me? Iâll meet you in my driverâs room as soon as I can.â
She nodded, understanding but already missing the warmth of his arms. âIâll be waiting. Go,â she whispered, giving him a small smile. âEnjoy every secondâyou deserve it.â
He pressed one last, lingering kiss to her forehead, then turned and jogged off to join the waiting crew, helmet in hand, while she stayed rooted to her spot, watching him disappear into the crowd. Her heart swelled with pride as she trailed after the team to watch his interviews, his beaming, breathless face glowing with pride and energy as he spoke about the gruelling conditions and the unbelievable climb from P17 to P1.
Then came the cool-down room, where she watched from the sidelines as he bantered with the other drivers, sharing exhausted smiles and congratulatory claps on the back, the weight of his achievement settling in as he finally let himself relax a little. She couldnât help but smile, feeling as though she could burst with joy just watching him, his eyes sparking with energy even as he looked ready to collapse from exhaustion.
And finally, the podium. She felt the crowdâs excitement echo through her as she looked up to see him standing tall, drenched from head to toe, a bottle of champagne in hand. When he raised it in victory, the crowd erupted, and she joined them, cheering at the top of her lungs as he sprayed champagne with abandon, laughing as he celebrated with the other drivers. His eyes swept over the crowd, and when they found hers, he gave a subtle nod, a silent promise that heâd be back with her soon.
After the podium, she made her way to his driverâs room, her heart fluttering as she paced the small space, the thrill of the day lingering in every fibre of her being. And then, finally, the door swung open, and there he was.
He looked completely worn out, his hair still damp and messy, his fireproof undersuit clinging to his skin. But his smile was bright, and his eyes lit up the moment he saw her.
Without a word, he crossed the room, pulling her into his arms, his lips finding hers in a soft, exhausted kiss. She melted into him, her arms wrapping around his neck as he held her close, the adrenaline and joy from his victory radiating between them.
âI donât think Iâve ever been this happy,â he whispered against her ear, his voice low and hoarse. âWinning today⊠and having you here with me. Itâs everything.â
She brushed a strand of damp hair from his face, smiling as she traced her fingers along his cheek. âYou did it, Max. Iâm so proud of you.â
He took her hand, pressing it to his heart, his eyes never leaving hers. âNone of it would mean anything without you,â he said quietly, his voice steady.
She felt her eyes sting with tears, overwhelmed by the depth of his words. âIâm here,â she whispered, her voice thick with emotion. âIâll always be here.â
They stayed like that for a long moment, wrapped up in each other, the rest of the world slipping away. He stroked her hair, pressing gentle kisses to her forehead, her cheeks, her lips, as if savouring each moment.
âLetâs get out of here,â he finally murmured, his voice warm and soft, âcelebrate somewhere a little less chaotic.â
She laughed, nodding. âAnywhere, as long as itâs with you.â
They headed back to his hotel, hand in hand, a peaceful quiet settling over them as they left the track behind. Once in the privacy of his suite, he gave her a lingering kiss, then smiled, nodding toward the bathroom. âGive me a few minutes to wash off all the champagne and⊠probably half the track dust,â he said with a laugh.
She grinned, watching as he disappeared into the bathroom, the sound of running water filling the suite a moment later. While he showered, she took the opportunity to pack up her things from her own room, gathering her scattered belongings quickly. The thrill of being close, of finally sharing a space for the night, filled her with a warmth that had nothing to do with the tropical heat outside.
By the time she returned, he was out of the shower, towelling off his damp hair, his expression softening as he took in the sight of her standing there with her things. Without a word, he crossed the room and took her bags from her hands, setting them by the closet as he gave her a smile that made her heart skip.
Once theyâd both changed into fresh clothesâsheâd opted for a simple dress, and he in casual jeans and a loose shirtâthey slipped out of the hotel through a side exit, making their way to a tiny, tucked-away Brazilian restaurant that had been recommended. The place was hidden, small enough to be missed by the crowds, with soft, low lighting that created an intimate, cosy atmosphere. A few locals lingered around tables, but they paid little attention to the couple as they took a corner table in the back.
They ordered caipirinhas and he reached across the table to hold her hand, his fingers tracing gentle circles on her skin as they laughed over silly little things, shared stories from the past few weeks, and spoke of things beyond racing, beyond work, just slipping back into the easy flow they always shared. The food was rich and deliciousâsmall plates of feijoada, grilled meats, and pĂŁo de queijoâeverything flavorful and homey.
He leaned across the table, his eyes warm and filled with that familiar spark, as he watched her speak, clearly savouring every moment. âYou know,â he said softly, âI think this is the best victory celebration Iâve ever had.â
She squeezed his hand, smiling back at him. âSame here. I missed just⊠being with you like this.â
They stayed until the restaurant closed, lingering over the last bites of dessert, letting the night stretch out as long as possible. Eventually, they headed back to the hotel, the city streets now quiet and still beneath the soft hum of streetlights.
Once back in his room, Max changed into a pair of soft pyjama bottoms, leaving his chest bare, his skin still warm from the shower. She slipped into one of his t-shirts, the fabric soft and oversized, the scent of him comforting and familiar. When she stepped out the bathroom, he was already waiting for her by the bed, his gaze softening as he took her in, a gentle smile curving on his lips.
Without a word, he reached for her, lacing his fingers through hers as he pulled her close, guiding her to the bed. She sank into the mattress beside him, and he wrapped an arm around her, drawing her against his chest, his fingertips trailing absently over her shoulder. She nestled into him, feeling his warmth seep through her, a cosy silence wrapping around them.
They lay there, tangled together, her head tucked beneath his chin as he gently traced circles on her back, his breath even and steady. He tilted her chin up, his eyes searching hers for a quiet moment before he leaned down, capturing her lips in a soft, lingering kiss, filled with a tenderness that said everything words couldnât. She kissed him back just as gently, savouring the intimacy of being close like this, the world beyond these walls feeling miles away.
When the kiss ended, he pressed his forehead to hers, a soft sigh escaping as he held her close, one hand settling over hers, fingers intertwined. They stayed that way, her head resting against his heartbeat, lulled by the steady rhythm.
Finally, they drifted off, still tangled in each otherâs arms, wrapped up in the warmth and comfort of just being together. As the night settled around them, Max couldnât help but smile, holding her a little closer as he slipped into sleep, his heart full and light.
Max couldnât have wished for a better weekend.
the end.
#f1#f1 imagine#f1 fanfic#max verstappen#max verstappen fic#max verstappen x reader#max verstappen x you#max verstappen fluff#max verstappen fanfic#red bull racing#formula one#f1 2024#f1 x reader#x reader#reader insert#max verstappen imagine#f1 x female reader#f1 x y/n#f1 one shot#formula one x reader#formula 1#ann speaks#ann talks
1K notes
·
View notes
Text
guilt tripping- o.piastri
summary: oscar asks something of you that you know you can't do. you do it anyway and it ends in you two almost breaking up. almost.
pairing: oscar piastri x fem! chronic illness! reader
a/n: hey yall, I just broke two ribs (lol) and got diagnosed with a chronic illness (lmao) so I might not be posting as frequently- just dealing with it physically and mentally so yah đč
àšà§â
àšà§â
àšà§â
àšà§â
àšà§â
àšà§â
àšà§â
âI donât know if I can go,â you sighed, feeling even worse.Â
âThatâs alright,â he assured you, but you could hear the way his excitement depleted and his mood lowered.Â
âM-maybe I can work something out, I donât want to leave you alone,â your guilt grew everyday, this wasnât healthy for either of you.Â
âI donât want you over-exerting yourself,â he spoke softly into the phone. âIâll just ask mum if she has any friends that want to go or something. She always brings a million people with her.â
âI donât want to leave you hanging Oscar. Melbourne is a big race. Iâd be happy to come over like a week before, and then come to the race once Iâve had a few days to heal,â you bargained. A 22 hour connecting flight was not something youâd ever wanted to do. You couldnât do it. You knew the pain would be too bad, yet you still stood there, offering it anyway. âAnd then Iâd come for the race on Sunday, or just small bits on all the days.â
âReally?â his voice picked up, excited now. âYouâre sure?â
âIâm sure Osc, I love seeing you race,â your smile was more of a grimace than anything, but still, the guilt in your chest lessened as you listened to Oscar speak animatedly about the race weekend, while your anxiety ran through the roof. You couldnât do all the things he wanted you to do, you never could. This had been a problem at the beginning of your relationship, every time heâd plan a date that wasnât dinner or a movie, youâd have to break the news that a 15 kilometre hike wasnât something youâd be able to do on a whim. Things like that took planning, physio, and preparation. Your chronic illness was no joke, and had limited you since you were a teenager. In the past few years heâd gotten much better at everything, from helping you with your physio exercises, attending pilates classes with you, knowing what to do on bad pain days, and always looking out for you in public. You knew he was just getting away with himself, and you didn't want to disappoint, so you agreed to it all, hoping against hope that it wouldnât be a bad week of pain or flare-ups wise.Â
àšà§â
àšà§â
àšà§â
àšà§â
You got into Melbourne and sobbed when you got in the car. Thankfully, it was Hattie picking you up, so she just held your hand as you silently cried, the joint and too much to bear. You went straight to bed as Hattie explained to the rest of the house that you were exhausted, and Oscar took it at face value. You usually get extremely tired after long days, and youâd just had a 22-hour day of travel.Â
âIâll go check on her-â he started, desperate to see you but Hattie cut him off.Â
âNO!â she squeaked, trying to not sound suspicious. Oscar raised an eyebrow. âSheâs really tired and sheâs already gone to sleep.â
âYeah, well Iâm tired so Iâm going to bed,â he explained, stretching then yawning.Â
âOsc,â Hattie sighed, knowing she had to tell him. âSheâs not⊠alright. She canât do 22 hour travel days like you or I can. She has Lupus and sheâs still trying to figure out her medication, so it hurts all the time. She cried from the airport to here, all to support you because you asked her to, and she feels guilty every single time she canât say yes. Sheâs done real damage to herself by coming here. I want you to understand that, do you understand that?âÂ
Oscar nodded, because the other option was breaking down into tears. Yes, heâd felt guilty that he couldnât be there to take care of you while travelling, and he knew he was asking a lot of you when he asked. The guilt settled deep in his stomach and made him nauseous, but still he continued on to his bedroom where you were sleeping peacefully. He could see the puffy eyes, the red nose, the open bottles of medication on the nightstand. He wrapped an arm around your waist, another in your hair and pulled you as close as possible, whispering teary sorrys into your ear.Â
When you woke up the next morning, you knew what you had to do. This wasnât fair on either of you, and you needed to make a change. You quickly (but silently) got up, and started to leave the room, but Oscar grabbed ahold of your hand before you could leave.Â
âPlease donât sneak out on me,â he begged, sitting up. He looked wrecked, puffy eyes, red rose- had he been crying? God, had you made him cry?Â
âOsc, whatâs wrong?â you asked, concern clear as day on your face as you cupped his face with your hands.
âIâm sorry,â he whispered, his voice breaking. âI knew I was asking too much when I asked you to come here, Iâm so sorry.â
Your heart tightened in your chest. âOsc, Iâm alright, I was just tired last night and-â
âHattie told me,â his voice was deep, deeper than usual, and he pressed a gentle kiss to your hand. âAnd Iâm so sorry.â
âOsc, I couldâve said no if I didnât think I was able for it,â you tried to reassure him but he shook his head.Â
âY/n, you did say no and I didnât take it as an answer,â he scoffed.Â
You were stunned into silence. âI think we need to have a talk about us, Osc.â
He nodded, taking your hands in his.Â
âThis isnât fair on you. I know I can't control my illness, and neither can you. It sucks, but itâs a fact. I wish I could be there for every single race and cheer you on with the other girls, but I canât. Itâs not in the cards for me right now, and I donât know when it will be. Oscar, I love you so much, and youâve been with me through everything and I know you deserve someone who can always be there for you, and Iâm not that person right now. I love you but I know itâs not enough,â You finally looked at him and he was biting his lip as tears streamed down his cheeks. âIâm sorry.â
He shook his head and stood up, dropping your hands as he paced his bedroom. âYou know how much I love you, donât you?â he asked and you nodded as you held back more tears. âSo you know that I still feel your support even when weâre in different time zones or on different continents, right? You know that I value you being in as little pain as possible more than being at the barricade after a race, right? You know that I fucking love you more than I love racing, right? Y/n, Iâve been here the entire time, since we were 14 years old. Youâre the reason I get in the car, you make me better, all the time itâs just you. I plan on being with you for my whole life, Y/n. I want to be there for everything. I plan to sit there through every appointment about medication until you find the one that actually helps you, I plan on being there for every day where you donât feel up to it, I plan on being there for you, always. I never want to let go of you, and yeah, it is nice to be able to see you after a race, and I know that because fucking facetime exists. If you still want to break up because I fucked up by asking you to come here, go ahead, but donât ever think that Iâm without because Iâm with you. I am so in love with you, Y/n. I mean it. I want to marry you one day, I want a family with you, I want to be old with you so we get to reminisce on the good olâ days and make some more while we have time. âThe good olâ daysâ will be the days I spend with you. More than any race win, more than any trophy, or than anything. My favourite part about a race weekend is coming home because I know no matter what my result was, youâll be there with open arms, loving me anyways. Youâre more than enough for me.â
You crossed the room and wrapped your arms around him, crying into his hoodie as he held you. âI love you too.â
After a few moments of both of you calming down, he finally spoke. âCan you forgive me for being such an asshole?â he asked, wiping his eyes.Â
You nodded, a small smile on your face. âI can, can you forgive me for being such an idiot?â
He chuckled. âYouâre no idiot,â he picked you up and gently placed you back on the bed lying beside you. âI love you.âÂ
âI love you too.â
àšà§â
àšà§â
àšà§â
àšà§â
àšà§â
àšà§â
àšà§â
navigation for my blog :) (masterlist)
#f1 imagine#f1 x reader#formula 1 x you#formula one imagine#oscar piastri x reader#oscar piastri#oscar piastri x you#formula one x reader#formula 1#formula one#mclaren#oscar piastri x fem!reader#f1 fluff#x reader#female reader#x reader insert#reader insert#x reader fic#x reader fluff#x reader fanfiction#fem reader#gn reader#f1#f1 smau#f1 imagines#f1 x you#requests#f1 fic#f1 fanfic#f1 fanfiction
1K notes
·
View notes
Text
â hugging scenarios.
genshin men in different scenarios revolving around hugging. (â) a/n: will maybe do a pt. 2. suggest (male) characters! :]
characters included: kazuha, xiao, scaramouche/wanderer, tighnari, cyno, kaeya, and diluc.
kazuha nuzzles his head in your neck as you run your fingers through his un-ponytailed hair, your back facing him as you focus mainly on what youâre reading.
heâs gripping you tightly, thinking up reasons of how heâd be able to explain throwing your book with your notes inside across the room solely to steal your attention away from working so much. he means the bestâ really!
as much as it is tempting, kazuha wouldnât dare make you upset at him for ruining your papers. instead, heâll patiently wait and continue softly humming and kissing your neck until you finish. heâd wait for as long as you wish, if it only meant youâd eventually hold him in your arms at the end.
he hears you sigh a few minutes later. âah⊠i think that should be it.â
he watches in anticipation as you put your research on the nightstand and turn to face him, a soft smile on your face as you apologize. âsorry, love.â
kazuha simply shakes his head as he brings you in closer, kissing your lips in earnest.
âxiao?â you call out, a little bit of a stutter coming out at the end. it was absolutely freezing out here. it was a good thing you brought a jacket, but even then.
you felt a breeze behind you as you turned to face the beloved adepti materializing out of nowhere.
the smile you wore quickly changed as you panicked seeing what he was wearing. reaching for your coat buttons, you cut off whatever he was about to say with, âare you crazy?! youâll die of hypothermia wearing that in this weather! oh my gosh, xiaoââ
âitâs reallyââ he tries to make a sentence again, only to be shut off by you wrapping your piece of clothing around his shoulders, directing his arms to go through the sleeves.
although he was used to this sort of cold weather, he appreciated the thought. but the odd warm fuzzy feelings that usually overtook his chest whenever you did something kind for him didnât fully spread this time around, seeing that your sleeveless top and thin enough pants barely sheltered you at all from the snow starting to come down.
it was his turn to reprimand you as he sighed, âyouâre calling me crazy, and yet youâre the one wearing a sleeveless shirt in the middle of one of our coldest periods. what were you thinking?â
despite him looking annoyed, he came towards you and swiftly picked you up bridal style, earning a small yelp as you were swept off your feet (literally) and teleported over to wangshu inn.
you quickly got over the initial shock, a smile returning to your lips. âyâknow, thatâs technically qualified as kidnapping.â
âshut up.â he responded, although with no malicious hint in his voice. he made sure to kiss you afterwards though, just for some extra warming up.
scaramouche hates you, he swears. he hates you (affectionately), he hates you (lovingly), he hates you (with absolutely no hate behind his words).
but, letâs be honest, he really doesnât.
he loves you so badly it hurts. it hurts to think that one day, you might leave him like everyone else has. even after everything, even after he got rid of his name scaramouche, sometimes those seeds of doubt still manage to plague him, even though youâve been with him through it all. damn his stupid past.
but, oh. the way those seeds get crushed under the weight of his non-existent heart expanding as you hug him tightly, your arms squeezing him unlike a thing but a human.
he holds back his tears as he lets himself be held by you, his own arms holding you just as tight as he leaves a kiss, albeit shaky, on your jaw.
when you rub his back comfortingly, he lets the smallest tear run down his porcelain face before burying his head into your collarbone, letting the rest fall as he recites his feelings; true and sincere.
vulnerable is a word youâd describe him as in this moment. though heâll never admit that this scene happened afterwards, you know that he knows that whenever heâs in need of some love and affection, youâll be there for him.
he loves you so, so much; mean words be damned.
tighnari, always so caring and hardworking. but it wouldnât kill him to take a break once in a while, no?
âi swear, i will go into the forest and get one of those mushrooms that youâve been so cautious around and shove it down your throat if you donât stop working right now,â you threaten, even if from your ears it sounds empty.
he sighs in return, knowing that you wouldnât go to sleep until he joined you. especially since heâs been skipping out these past few days. he got up a bit too quickly, wincing at the way his head spun when doing so. âfine, fine. archons, my head hurtsâŠâ
âthatâs what happens,â you shrug, taking his hands and walking to the bed. he sits with you, blinking the heaviness of his eyes away as you suddenly hug him.
tighnari exhales at the feeling, he should really thank you for saving him from his continuous workloadsâŠ
you scratch behind his ears, watching his tail twitch before swishing lowly back and forth. he embraces you back, his eyes coming to a pleasant close. he really needs the sleep.
before he does get the rest; though, he mutters to you a quiet, âthank you, love you sâmuch.â
and finally, he drifts off, you in his arms. what more could he ask for?
what a stoic guy that cyno is. and with the absolute worst jokes leaving his mouth, itâs a wonder that the two personalities living in his body are residing in the same person.
heâs telling you jokes as youâre cuddling with him, you mindlessly running your hands through his hair and commenting on his words as he tells them and explains if you donât get it.
oh, and youâre doing a try not to laugh challenge. did i mention that cynoâs jokes are like, collectively the worst?
he has one goal in mind: tell a good enough joke to hear you laugh and claim victory.
he likes hearing you genuinely laugh. he likes the sound. he likes the swell of pride whenever you laugh because of him.
so as he dishes out one of his newer bests and awaits your judgement, heâs happily surprised hearing a small noise from you before turning into a full chuckle.
he doesnât think heâs ever had the urge to hug you as tightly as he has now (okay okay, this is a lie. itâs on par with when he confessed and you agreed and the other times youâve laughed at his jokes).
âcynoâ youâre gonna break my ribs!âŠâ
âthis is my reward.â
âkaeya⊠go get some rest. youâre too drunk to be up right now.â
âi donât wanna. i want to stay with you,â he says, emphasizing it by hugging you tighter. heâs behind you, his form practically towering over yours as you try to keep your composure.
he mustâve really drunk a lot tonight.
you sigh. âi'll be there soon, okay? i just have to finishââ
âyou can do whateverââ he hiccups, ââit is tomorrow.â
you sigh again. first you had to pick him up from the tavern, already interrupting what you had planned tonight. now this.
however, you know itâs not really a complaint.
youâre glad heâs honest when drunk. you just canât stop that warm feeling in your chest knowing that he genuinely wants you to himself.
well, might as well give him what he wants.
diluc can feel your hands around him as heâs busy scrubbing glasses, already having refused you four times in wanting to help him. not because he thinks youâre incapable of not breaking anythingâ just the opposite, actuallyâ but he doesnât want you to work because of him.
especially with all the work youâve already had today. on second thought, you may break a glass from dozing off for a moment from the lack of sleep youâve been getting. he thinks itâs better for you to rest as heâs doing his job.
heâs not moving much, thankfully. the tavernâs already closed, and itâs just you and him in there. heâs thinking about all the different ways he could carry you home in your half asleep state.
last cup done. finally, he can close up and go home with you and sleep soundly with you in his arms⊠yeah, that sounds good.
he turns slowly to face you, making your head raise to meet his eyes. you smile, albeit tiredlyâ but not failing to bring one of his own to dilucâs face nonetheless.
he kisses your lips softly. âletâs go home now.â
©ïžkazusys â 1/9/24; do not plagiarize/steal, repost, translate, and/or claim any of my works as your own.
#[ đ pages . . . ]#genshin impact x reader#kazuha x reader#xiao x reader#scaramouche x reader#wanderer x reader#tighnari x reader#cyno x reader#kaeya x reader#diluc x reader#genshin impact kazuha#kazuha genshin impact#kazuha fluff#kazuha kaedehara x reader#genshin impact#genshin x reader#genshin#fluff#genshin imagines#xiao genshin x reader#kunikuzushi x reader#wanderer fluff#wanderer genshin#scaramouche genshin impact#genshin tighnari#tighnari#genshin cyno#cyno genshin impact#kaeya alberich x reader#diluc ragnivindr x reader
2K notes
·
View notes
Text
MDNI
141 as your drug dealer boyfriend
Ghost- Let's be real with ourselves, Ghost is not a good man. He doesn't care who he hurts, as long as he gets his. He will do anything to get what he wants and there is no stopping him. It's what made him a great soldier, and it's what makes him a great kingpin. He moves weight to put it lightly. There isn't a moment where an uncut key is unmoving; from a warehouse, to a plane (or car, or train), to a distributor, to a pusher, to up someone's nose. He'll try to do some damage control, make sure things aren't cut with fent, but that's only to make sure customers keep coming back. He likes to keep his hands clean, in the sense that he'll never be the one to pull the trigger on anyone that's out of line. Living up to his name, no one knows what he looks like. Hell, a lot of people don't even think he's real.
But when it comes to you, Simon's a different man. No talk about work, just you and him. Other than the multiple hidden guns around the house and Glock he sleeps with, life is normal with you. Holiday homes in the French countryside and Bahamas. Designer everything. Sports cars in all your favorite colors. You want for nothing. It's the life he wanted for you. After all those years of crying and hurt when he was away for weeks or months, you deserved the world. Want the new HermĂšs bag? You got it. Can't choose between the black or white louboutins? Get both. Stop eating you out because you can't feel your toes anymore? Sorry love, only thing he can't do for you.
Soap- Johnny is a small business owner. Weighs everything out by his own hand. Presses his own pills. Let's you help baggie everything up. A social butterfly, this man is at every concert, rave, or music festival. Sometimes he has a friend help push his stuff when he just wants to stay home with you, but for the most part he's his own salesman. And a damn good one. Never has overstock. No matter how much he brings with him, he'll always sellout.
Has a supernatural sense of being shorted. Can tell if a bag is even a few grams off just by holding it.
"Ye'r an idiot if ye think ye kin short me."
And when the other party denies, he always keeps a pocket scale on him, setting the parcel on it. And sure enough, he's always right.
He'll come home with a few grand, the only job you have is to sit there and look pretty. And roll his spliffs. Sitting in his lap, tucking the rolling paper into itself and licking it closed while he counts out a fat wad of cash. He hands you a fat stack,
"A've never bin good wi' money. Ye know how to spend it better than me."
He never touches the stuff he sells, no need to when all the dopamine he needs is right between your legs.
"Ten times better than any o tha' shite, anyways."
He pants in your ear while folding you in half, firm grip on your throat.
Gaz- When it comes to psychedelics, Kyle is your go-to man. He's a fucking genius, synthesizes his own DMT and LSD in a lab. It's a state of the art facility, clean with the latest and greatest equipment available. He supplies the whole Northeast. If it's a hallucinogen, it's most likely Gaz's product. And if it's good, it's definitely his. He has a cozy set up with some "organization" that he cooks for. Steers clear of actually selling to people, no need to when his clients line his pockets so well. Never brings work home, he even wears different clothes when he's in the lab.
He has a set schedule he has to adhere to but sometimes he's able to take vacations with you. And that's how you ended up bent over a balcony watching the sunset in Punta Cana,
"I work so hard to make you happy, now it's my turn yeah?"
A breeze sends a shiver up your spine while he kisses your shoulder,
"I know a private beach where you can even out those tan lines,"
Of course he doesn't give a shit about that, he just wants to fuck you silly on the seaside (and show off to anyone who might be watching.)
Price- Caring and nurturing, the man naturally has a green thumb. And alongside his prized heirloom tomatoes, he grows really, really good weed. Has a whole growroom in his basement, decked out with proper ventilation, ACs, UV lights, the works. The man grows medical grade weed that private clinics buy from him. He's legit. And of course he serves the public as well under the table, sells only to people he knows and established clients can refer others to him. He treats his plants like his babies, even going as far as to play music for them (according to him classical music helps them grow better???). You don't know where he finds the time, but he also made you rose garden for your anniversary. He brings up the idea of a family every so often. He'll finish as deep inside of you as possible,
"Let's replace that plant nursery for a real one, yeah love?"
Gonna write actual stories for each one if y'all like this ( . * 3 * . )/`
#sorry if its short!#still on vacation#cod x reader#short stuff#simon ghost riley#johnny soap mactavish#john price#kyle gaz garrick#simon ghost x reader#simon ghost x you#simon riley x you#simon riley x reader#john price x reader#johnny soap mctavish x reader#kyle gaz x reader#kyle gaz x you#soap x you#soap x reader#gaz x reader#gaz x you#john price x you#price x you#price x reader
1K notes
·
View notes
Text
All Over Again
[Summary]: Paternity leave has its effects on Jungkook. After his first day back at work, he can't help but show you how much he doesn't want to go back.
[Theme]: Dad!Jk, CEO!Jk, Married Couple AU, Parent's AU
[Rating]: 18+ for sexual themes. Marking, kissing, nipple play, creampie, unprotected (wrap it up y'all), dom!JK, mentions of another pregnancy, talks of pregnancy and getting pregnant, etc.
[Word Count]: 4,274
[A/N]: This is a pure result of the urge my body suddenly gets to want a child right before my period smh. Anyway, felt cute, might delete later once I am sane.
Itâs been a long ass day. Jungkookâs white button-up feels stapled to his skin, his pants folding uncomfortably with every step he makes as he exits his office. A long finger comes up to his neck, digging underneath his striped tie, wiggling it a little to loosen the chokehold it has around his neck. His other hand feels bound to his briefcase, which carries so much importance in his life but yet so much burden at the same time.
Itâs his first day back at work after his baby boy was born. The briefcase he holds reminds him of the duty he has to his family â of his passion and his support for you and your baby. But it also reminds him of the time it has ripped away from spending with you. He clutches it with so much strength at the thought of you, pulling his car keys out of his pocket and pressing the unlock button so hard, that he thinks he almost might just break it.
With a deep breath, he takes off his tie and tosses it in the passenger seat along with his briefcase. Heâs ready to go home. That picture of you, him, and your son that you insisted on framing and Jungkook bringing to work has been a constant reminder of what he has to look forward to at the end of the day. If only his paternity leave could have been longer. You and his son are all heâs been able to think about. How you were doing, if you needed his help, if Jaemun was being feisty, how the cute crinkle on his nose resembles yours to a T.
Itâs late January, and the winter air is unforgiving. He wonders if you have the heat on high enough; if Jaemun had enough blankets, or if the tip of your nose was cold like how it always is in the winter months. He can imagine you holding him close, swaddling him as you sing to him delicately. The thought makes his whole body warm, even though the air is so cold that it feels like glass is cutting against his skin.
Heâs convinced he will take more time off. Heâs the CEO, after all. He could take months off and it not matter. He wants to be with you always â at all times of the day to hold you and be there for you like he should be. If only the world had been that easy to where passions didnât have a price. He got lucky, his passion having a heavy penny attached to it. But he wonders where that passion took something more valuable away from him â time. He finds himself now strapped between the choice of time and passion, and he fights the fact that he cannot choose both.
The door to your home is welcoming to his eyes as he pulls up to it. Itâs not big by any means. Just homey and enough for the three of you. Even with the snow covering almost every inch of it, the reminder of how warm it is on the inside makes his drive to enter it even greater. He does so with a shiver, coming up to your shared home with a stomp of his boots to shake off the snow just before he enters.
To his surprise, heâs met with hushed music coming from the kitchen as he puts his winter coat on the hook, places his briefcase on the wooden floor, and shimmies out of his shoes. He looks at his watch first, making sure itâs not Jaemunâs nap time, to which he finds out it is. The soft music makes sense now, and he smiles when he makes his way down the hallway to the source of the noise.
The rest of the house is dark except for the kitchen-living room area that you and your baby rest in. Jaemun is peacefully sleeping in his bassinet by the couch, cuddling his dinosaur blanket, while you are by the stove, stirring something.
You look over your shoulder at the sound of familiar footsteps, and your heart immediately softens at the sight of your husband in the doorframe. He smiles back tiredly, running his hand through his hair in an exhausted attempt to pull himself together before he makes his way over to you. He looks relieved, like heâs finally received what heâs wanted all day. Youâre happy to see him, knowing all too well that thatâs what youâve been waiting for all day, too.
Big, warm hands slide around your waist, a heavy chin rests on your shoulder as he kisses your cheek softly. He takes a deep breath, breathing in your presence as he releases the tension from work off his shoulders. You tend to have an instant effect on him â he missed you so much.
âYouâre stirring water?â he laughs as he stares at the pot of water on the stove, unboiled, as you stir it as if it is.
âIâm trying to get it to boil quicker,â you explain with a defeated sigh. âDoesnât seem to be working. I feel like Iâve been standing here for 20 minutes.â
He hums from behind you, taking your stirring hand and stopping your motions. Youâve never been a big cooker, but he knows youâve been trying lately. âJust let it be, love. Itâll get there.â
You do as he says, putting the ladle down on the countertop and turning around in his embrace. You wrap your arms around his neck, staring at the tall man who holds you close against him. Youâre met with a tired Jungkook who rests his forehead against yours as you play with the hairs at the back of his head.
âHow was work?â you ask gently.
He groans, wrapping his hands around your waist and holding you tighter against him. It causes you to rest your cheek on his shoulder, hugging him in full.
âThat bad?â you chuckle.
Your husband just sighs against your neck. âItâs too early to go back, Y/n,â he candors.
You tuck a strand of hair that fell in front of his face behind his ear. âWeâre ok, Kook,â you comfort. But he only shakes his head, making the tucked strand fall out of its place again.
âIâm not,â he says. âI want to be here with you. Spend time with Jaemun before heâs suddenly 25.â
You chuckle at that. It does feel like that sometimes. Itâs been three months since your son was born, but it feels like it was just yesterday that you were holding him for the first time.
You can only hold his cheek in response, running your thumb slowly against his soft skin. You feel for him, you really do. Heâs such a good father. It makes your heartstrings tug and twist and pull every time you see him with your little boy. Itâs only a matter of time before you have to go back to work as well. The thought makes your stomach turn, and you can completely sympathize with your husband dreading going back to work and leaving you and Jaemun.
âYour water is boiling,â he breaks you out of your daze.
âOh,â you turn around. You smile, knowing he was right before. âIâm making pasta if that sounds ok?â
Jungkook kisses your neck in response, a gentle thing that has your tummy flipping for a second.
âYou could also probably wake up our son,â you check the time on the microwave. âHeâs been a little sleepy today, so I let his nap go for a little longer than usual.â
You add the pasta in and turn the water down, moving over to the greens left on the cutting board. You start chopping until your husbandâs lips move lower.
âOur son,â he whispers, kissing your collarbone. The statement makes him jittery. It feels unreal still, even after nine months of waiting, and another three of actually having your little family here with him. Youâre his wife, the mother of his kid, and he loves you more than anything in the world. You gave him something he can never find an equivalent to giving back to you. You gave him your heart and a family, and thereâs nothing that can replace or overcome what that means to him. His soul lives for yours; itâs overwhelming what youâve done for him. Itâs overwhelming how you make him feel.
He kisses your collarbone softly once again, his heart full. You tilt your head to the side for more, and he gives it to you, kissing up your neck with slow wet kisses.
âKook,â you exhale gently. You feel him hum against the skin just under your ear. Large palms cup your waist, his body moving closer to yours, trapping your hips against the countertop. Your knife feels loose in your hand when he bites at your skin gently, his tongue brushing over the bite mark afterward.
He stirs something within you. Something that youâve missed terribly for the past few months. It makes your thighs tremble as he gently caresses your skin under his fingertips.
âThe babyââ you begin, but Jungkookâs motions cut you off yet again when his fingers slowly slide down your front. Heâs unsure, his hand hesitating over your skin as his breath stops momentarily in thought.
âIs this okay?â He asks you genuinely. You nearly fall to your knees, dropping your knife onto the board, when his fingers put pressure over your clothed mound. Itâs subtle, and much more gentle than what youâre used to with him. You know heâs being cautious, but god did you miss him. âIf itâs too much, Iâll pull away.â
You shake your head.
Itâs been a long time since the two of you have gotten intimate. Childbirth wasnât easy, and your doctor just recently gave you two the âokâ for sex. The first time you tried since then wasnât like what youâre used to with your husband. It was slow and painful, ending with a lot of apologies, embarrassment, and frustration. Itâs safe to say that you have to get used to sex all over again.
âNo,â you lean against him. âJ-Just be gentle. Iâm still a little sore.â
âOk,â he whispers against your neck, kissing it softly. âJust relax for me, baby. Iâll make it feel good, I promise.â
You nod, loosening your nervous shoulders as your husband takes control. He stops swiftly for a second, turning the stove on the lowest setting before looking over his shoulder at his son to ensure heâs still fast asleep. Once he sees that he is, he immediately returns to you.
âSo good for me,â he says, slowly circling your clit over your sweats. His other hand squeezes your waist before it moves up, sliding under your shirt and trickling over your breast. Youâre wearing a soft bra todayâone without an underwireâwhich makes it easier for him to slide his fingers under.
You whimper when he softly massages your boob, his fingers playing with your nipples gently. Your body, especially your breasts, has become 10x more sensitive since birth. You can feel everything, and everything either hurts or feels really really good. Whenever your husband seems to hold them, youâre a whimpering mess, melting like putty in his arms as he plays with you.
âSensitive,â Jungkook smiles. His fingers rub harder against you, and you subtly buck your hips against him. His lips graze against your skin, his hair tickling your collarbone as he assaults your neck over and over again.Â
âYouâre so cute when youâre pregnant,â he rasps against your cheek before planting a sweet kiss upon it. âWanna see you like that all the time. So full of me â carrying our babies.â
âJungkook, Iââ you whine, grasping onto his wrist. Youâre unsure what to do with yourself, wanting him to do so much to you, but not knowing where to start.
The man behind you takes his hand away from your mound, and he chuckles when you whine in protest. But his thumbs hook on your pants and underwear, slowly pulling them down.
âRelax, baby,â he asks again. âI told you, Iâm gonna take care of you. Donât worry.â
His hand slides around your waist again, smoothing over your skin until itâs sliding between your folds. The back of your hand comes up to your mouth as your other grips the countertop for support as he plays with you.
âSo wet,â he moans, feeling the effect heâs had on you with his fingers. âThis all for me? Iâve barely touched you yet.â
You nod, feeling completely at the mercy of the man behind you. His other hand plays with your nipple again, and you feel another wave of euphoria go straight to your pussy.
His fingers gather your slick generously, smoothing it over your clit before circling it gently. He plays infinities over it, making your knees go weak. Itâs getting harder to stay quiet, especially when he pinches your nipple gently, making you gasp at the soreness and pleasure it causes.
âK-Kook,â you whine, but he only chuckles, quickening his motions on your clit as he presses further into you. You can feel his dick strained against his work pants, and the thought of him inside you again makes you feel so needy for him. âWant you,â you pant. âPlease.â
âPatience,â he shushes you, kissing your neck surely. âI havenât even made you cum yet.â
âWanna cum with you,â you whine in protest.
âYou will,â he promises.
You gasp as he switches his finger, his thumb trading places with his middle. It circles over you just the same, except this time, itâs joined by his middle finger slowly inserting itself between your folds.
âOh,â you exhale, feeling weak when he pumps it in and out of you slowly.
He lets himself test your reactions, seeing if the insertion is too much â if it hurts or feels uncomfortable. It doesnât seem to be, and he slowly lets his ring finger join with his middle, causing you to roll your eyes back slightly.
âSo good for me, baby,â he encourages. âDoes that feel good?â
âYes,â you reply almost immediately.
He kisses your neck. His lips leave hot, wet marks all over your skin as he curls his fingers against your g-spot. His other hand quickly comes to your waist, stabilizing you as you whimper against the back of your hand, trying your best to keep quiet.
He circles his thumb faster, his fingers circling and brushing against your g-spot in tandem with his movements. You feel your orgasm looming over you, and with a certain pressure against your clit, youâre coming undone just as he said you would all over his fingers.
âThere you are,â he coaxes you. Youâre a whimpering mess, and he feels his dick twitch at the sight of you falling apart on his fingers. He helps you ride out your high, his fingers very gently brushing over your clit as you come down.
Once you're calmed down, you reach around you, playing with his belt loop as you rest your head on his shoulder and look up at him. He looks back down, hesitating again knowing what you want but unsure if itâs too much for you to handle yet.
âWhat,â he smiles teasingly with a kiss to your forehead.
âI want you,â you candor, looking at up him with pleading eyes.
He kisses your nose. âAre you sure? You said it hurt last time.â
You nod. âPlease, Koo,â you beg him.
His chest rises, and he takes a deep breath before he nods, kissing you gently as he unbuckles his belt. He places it on the counter before unzipping himself and pulling his pants down. It springs up, pressing itself against your skin gently. But he takes himself in his hands, hesitantly letting it slide down over your folds.Â
âLet me know if Iâm hurting you, okay?â He says, lining himself up to you with a few strokes of his cock. God, was he nervous. The last time sex hurt really bad for you, and that was just a week ago. He wonders if the prep was enough; he hopes it was, he really doesnât want to hurt you again.
You nod, holding onto the countertop again as his tip rubs against your entrance. Your coat his cock in such slickness, even youâre surprised at how much you leak onto him. You miss your husband. You need this bad, and so does he.
âOh, and try to stay quiet, yeah?â He says with a push of his hips. The motion has him covering your mouth with his hand, shielding your moans quickly. âThe baby is still sleeping.â
His dick slips past your folds so smoothly, it has you gasping for breath at how good it feels. Itâs nothing like the last time. Heâs gentler, but still so so big, he fills you up just right.
âFuck,â he whispers against your neck once he sheathes himself fully inside of you. The man behind you stills, completely overwhelmed with the feeling of you. He, too feels like heâs had to relearn sex all over again. How to please you right now that your body has changed, how to make sure that you are comfortable with his pace and size. You two havenât had sex like this in so long, he feels overwhelmed when you feel almost too good for him to control. A part of him is embarrassed by how quickly he thinks heâs going to last.Â
âHow are you still so tight, hm?â he asks with a firm grip on your hip. âY-You okay?â
You can only nod, pushing your hips down against him. The motion forces him further into you, to which both of you grunt at the feeling.
Testingly, Jungkook pulls out slowly, before pushing back into you a little quicker than before. You coat him generously, creating a motion that makes it easy for him to repeat.Â
He develops a pace, fucking you against the kitchen countertop with your juices leaking all over his cock and down your thighs. The stove is on and your baby still sleeps; there are uncut vegetables in front of you and your husband still wears his work shirt. But he fucks you as if none of that matters. As if his only priority is to make sure you feel good, to let yourself go as he fuck you deep and just how you like it.Â
His hand comes off from your mouth and settles on your hip. His other hand wraps around your front, holding you impossibly close against his body.
You moan softly when he bends you over slightly against the countertop, the new angle making it hard for you to stay quiet. But you push your hips against him anyway, telling him without words to go deeper.
The action causes him to moan, following your request with a snap of his hips.
âYou like it that much, hm?â He grunts, cock ramming into you. âLike it when I knock you up good?â
âY-Yes!â You whisper. âI love it so much, Koo.â
âY-yeah?â He leans over you. A tattooed hand cups over yours, palm embracing the back of your hand as he intertwines his fingers with yours. âGonna let me do it again?â
âMmhm,â you squeeze his fingers. âAs many times as y-you want.â
âA-Ah,â he pants, mind going into a frenzy over your words. The fact that he is yours, that you are his. That only he can hear you say that. That only he can make you feel this good. That only he has the privilege of calling you his wife. It makes his heart warm and his cock twitch.Â
âGod, Iâm going to ruin you if you say things like that, Y/n,â he warns. But you are relentless, leaning your head back on his shoulder, giving yourself to him further.Â
âW-Want you to,â you whimper. âI love you.âÂ
Your legs shake, completely weak from your past orgasm and your new one forming at the pit of your stomach. His cock makes you feel so full, like youâre stretched to the max capacity as he fucks you good. You know heâs close when his dick twitches inside of you after your words, which only encourages you to gain some strength and begin fucking yourself back on his cock.
âMm, fuck,â he grips your hips tightly. âMâ gonna cum.â
He quickly reaches around you again, drawing infinities over your clit with his middle finger. His eyes roll back as your cunt naturally tightens at the feeling. Your hips jolt and the knots in your tummy slowly start to unravel themselves onto his dick as you come undone. Just as he had promised, with a final twitch, heâs cumming inside of you with hot, thick ropes filling you up with whispered exhales of your name on his lips.
He lets the two of you catch your breath, his forehead resting on your shoulder before heâs pulling out, shared cum leaking down your thighs and onto the floor. Quickly, he grabs a paper towel from the roll next to the stove and cleans you up a little.
With gentle hands, he helps you back into your sweats before he helps himself into his boxers. He still lingers behind you when he reaches a hand around you and turns the stove on a higher setting once again.Â
You turn around, wrapping your hands around his neck as you pull him in for a much-needed kiss. âI love you,â you whisper against him again. His hair falls onto your skin, dark locks intertangling with yours as his fingers come up to hold your face against his. Soft lips sear over yours, telling you things that simply cannot be put into words.Â
âI love you, too,â he brushes his nose against yours. âWas that okay? I didnât hurt you?â
You pause, looking up at his dilated pupils. He looks at you like you're his world; like he's given you his heart with the full intent of never receiving it back from you. You nod, kissing him softly again.Â
âYou should probably wake up your son now,â you poke his cheek.
Looking at the time on the microwave, he snaps out of his daze. âOh fuck,â he says as his fingers leave your side. You watch him leave you with a chuckle, turning back to your pasta wondering how in the world you go so lucky to marry and mother a kid to this man. Youâd truly give him anything he wanted.Â
***
[Bonus]
With gentle hands, so big against his babyâs frame, he picks Jaemun up in his arms, holding him against his chest. His dinosaur blanket swaddles him softly, and Jungkook does his best to make sure heâs correctly supported and held despite the extra fabric over his small frame.Â
Jaemun stirs, and Jungkook places a soft kiss on his tiny head before he gets the chance to freak out and cry. The baby seems to know exactly who is holding him, and he nearly falls back asleep at the familiarity of his fatherâs arms. But Jungkook bounces him against his chest softly, slowly waking him up for dinnertime.
He makes his way over to you, making unnecessary airplane noises, from what you assume is Jungkook pretending to be an airplane and his son the passenger.
âYou know, babies canât laugh until theyâre about 4 months,â you shake your head with a laugh.
âFalse,â your husband comes behind you again. âI swear heâs laughed before.â
You chuckle, taking the pan off the stove and pouring the insides into a strainer. Just the noodles are left in the strainer now, and you realize that you havenât thought past the part of boiling the noodles. You ignore that you have no idea what kind of pasta youâre making when Jungkook rests himself against the kitchen island.Â
Jaemun catches sight of you, and his arm reaches for you in Jungkookâs hold. You come over, giving him a kiss on the forehead before kissing your husband.
âWere you serious?â your husband asks you suddenly.Â
âAbout?â you raise your eyebrow.Â
âYou know,â he gulps, holding Jaemun a little tighter. He rests against Jungkook's shoulder, his eyes tempting to fall back asleep again. âMore kids.âÂ
You raise both your eyebrows again, looking at him as if he was serious. His heart beats faster when he realizes what youâre thinking, quickly rephrasing himself.Â
âN-Not now, of course,â he gulps.Â
You turn around, opening the fridge for some milk for Jaemun as you listen to him. You take out a pot, take the cased breast milk from earlier, and pour it in, turning on the stove afterward.Â
âI just mean, like, in the future,â he explains.
Thereâs a long pause as you wait for the pot to heat up enough. The man behind you is weak, and you donât know if you want to be mean and give him the blunt answer, or soften the blow. Watching how he cradles your son makes you want to go with the first choice.Â
âDonât you worry Jeon,â you start, as you stir the contents in the pot. You can hear him gulp behind you. âI planned on giving you as many babies as you want. But at least wait until Jaemun is in pre-school or something. I donât think I can handle two infants at once.âÂ
You hear little from him at your answer, leaving you smirking knowing full well that you put the man behind you in a frenzy imagining the future you just laid out for him.
***
[End. Do not copy. Original work of @jungkookstatts , 2023]
#jk#jeon#jungkook#jeongguk#jeonjungkook#jeon jungkook#jungkook x reader#jungkookxreader#jungkook x y/n#jungkookxy/n#jungkook fanfiction#jungkookfanfiction#bts fanfiction#btsfanfiction#btsfanfic#bts imagine#jungkook imagine#jungkookimagine#jungkook oneshot#jungkook x female reader#jungkookxfemalereader#jungkook smut#jungkooksmut#btsimagine#jungkookoneshot#bts fanfic#bts x reader#bts x y/n
4K notes
·
View notes